Welcome to the DFO World Wiki. With many major updates since the release of DFO, many items are missing. Visit Item Database Project to learn more.
Please remember to click "show preview" before saving the page.
Thanks for the updated logo snafuPop!

Difference between revisions of "Storybook"

From DFO World Wiki
Jump to: navigation, search
m
m (Broad and Shallow Knowledge for Refined Aradians)
 
(53 intermediate revisions by 7 users not shown)
Line 1: Line 1:
{{MissingInfo|Missing the following Storybooks: ''Blue Guardian'', ''Great Adventurer Karakas'': Chapter 1, and ''Broad and Shallow Knowledge for Refined Aradians'': Chapters 1 & 5. Feel free to add them below.}}
 
 
{{BackToTop}}
 
{{BackToTop}}
 
[[Category:Quests]]
 
[[Category:Quests]]
 +
[[Category:Lore]]
 
'''Storybooks''' are Use items that are acquired from dungeons that explain lore not shown in [[Epic Quests]]. Each Storybook contains 1 to 5 chapters. Upon using the item, the player receives a side quest, and at the end receives reward gold and experience at chapter completion. After completion, players can re-read the Storybook again on all account characters through the Storybook tab in the Use Item Inventory.
 
'''Storybooks''' are Use items that are acquired from dungeons that explain lore not shown in [[Epic Quests]]. Each Storybook contains 1 to 5 chapters. Upon using the item, the player receives a side quest, and at the end receives reward gold and experience at chapter completion. After completion, players can re-read the Storybook again on all account characters through the Storybook tab in the Use Item Inventory.
  
Line 24: Line 24:
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
 +
'''Green Guardian Gawen:''' Vetala stop being so stubborn.
 +
 +
'''Vetala:''' ...
 +
 +
'''Gawen:''' You know the kind of treatment we Dragons get from the outside world. And if the Imperial Army catches you, you'll be sent to a prison camp.
 +
 +
'''Vetala:''' But we need to do something. The Pentacles of the Elves have been deteriorating rapidly since the Great Metastasis. There should be something we can do about it.
 +
 +
'''Gawen:''' We can do many things, but why do we have to sacrifice ourselves and suffer so much for others?
 +
 +
'''Dragon Guardian Adrina:''' ...For all this time we've lived in Arad, others have done nothing but hurt us. They kidnapped our young and turned them into their pets. I can't count how many of us were killed for our horns because they make a good test material
 +
 +
'''Adrina:''' Everyone blames only the Empire, but think carefully, It's not the only force that has oppressed us. There are numerous collaborators. The outside world is full of them
 +
 +
'''Vetala:''' What has happened to us is wrong and tragic, but I'm not going out to help the Empire's despicable experiment. I want to protect the Pentacles of the Elves for myself.
 +
 +
'''Vetala:''' I once hated Arad. It's discriminated against us and looked down upon us because we're a minority. My dignity and opinions didn't matter in the face of its blind prejudice.
 +
 +
'''Vetala:''' But when I hear the Elves risked their lives to create the Pentacles to protect Arad, I was moved. Sacrificing oneself for the sake of others is easier said than done, but they did it.
 +
 +
'''Vetala:''' Their noble act is inspiring. I don't want to be a coward anymore.
 +
 +
'''Gawen:''' You won't listen to me, no matter what I say. Do as you please, but if you leave, we'll be moving someplace else.
 +
 +
'''Adrina:''' ...Vetala, did you want to become the Guardian because of the Pentacles?
 +
 +
'''Vetala:''' No, at least not in the beginning. My point of view has changed over time.
 +
 +
'''Adrina:''' You've always had a stubborn streak, but you also have a good heart and wisdom. I know you'll do us proud.
 +
 +
'''Vetala:''' I couldn't have been who I am now if it weren't for you, Master
 +
 +
'''Adrina:''' Hah hah. You're better than your teacher, but thank you
 +
 +
'''Adrina:''' Vetala, I agree that the Pentacles of the Elves must be protected for the existence of Arad. We Dragons are probably the only ones left who can do that.
 +
 +
'''Adrina:''' But the rest of us are not as brave as you are, or as forgiving. We've suffered at the hands of the outsiders too much.
 +
 +
'''Adrina:''' I feel a bit like a coward, but I'll stay here and pray for your safety. Remember that you've always been my pride and joy.
 +
 +
'''Vetala:''' Thank you, Master. I'll continue to follow your teachings and act accordingly as the Guardian.
 +
 +
'''Adrina:''' You've already packed and ready to go. You haven't officially received the title of Guardian yet, though, have you?
 +
 +
'''Vetala:''' No, and I don't think I can. The Elders aren't happy about my decision of going outside.
 +
 +
'''Adrina:''' But you're still the Guardian of the Dragons. You're leaving to protect the world we're living in. We shouldn't let you go without the title you deserve.
 +
 +
'''Adrina:''' We'll have to skip the presentation ceremony, but take this robe with you. I've prepared it for this day.
 +
 +
'''Adrina:''' Your color is now blue. I hereby announce that you are now to be called the Blue Guardian
 +
 +
'''Adrina:''' Give hope as bright as the blue sky to others and embrace everyone with a heart as big as the blue ocean.
 +
 +
'''Vetala:''' I will. Thank you.
 +
 +
'''Adrina:''' Vetala. May the Dragon Lord's valor and Nemer's wisdom be with you on your journey.
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
|}
 
|}
Line 103: Line 160:
  
 
'''Abello:''' "...Why did Father ever introduce me to Kargon?"
 
'''Abello:''' "...Why did Father ever introduce me to Kargon?"
 +
 +
<hr>
 +
<u>'''Condition Message'''</u> — ''Go to Seria and watch Kargon propose to her.''
  
 
'''Kargon:''' "Oh! Ah! You there, beautiful girl!"
 
'''Kargon:''' "Oh! Ah! You there, beautiful girl!"
Line 156: Line 216:
  
 
'''Abello:''' "Silk spider skin is colorful and shiny. ...Are you really going to use the skin?!"
 
'''Abello:''' "Silk spider skin is colorful and shiny. ...Are you really going to use the skin?!"
 +
 +
<hr>
 +
<u>'''Condition Message'''</u> — ''Watch Kargon give Seria his gift.''
  
 
'''Seria:''' "Oh. Hello."
 
'''Seria:''' "Oh. Hello."
Line 321: Line 384:
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
+
'''Book:''' ''In a peaceful time before the Great Metastasis befell, a small boy named Karakas was born in a small quiet village. He was so tiny that he fit his mother's skirt pocket.''
{{HiddenTextStart|
+
 
 +
''One day, Mother went out to care for her vegetable patch, with Karakas in her skirt pocket, and found her patch was infested by more moles than usual. Mother, Brothers, and Sisters were so busy hunting the moles that they didn't know Karakas fell out of the skirt pocket into a hole in the ground.''
 +
 
 +
''Karakas tried to get out only to fall deeper into the hole.''
 +
 
 +
''Karakas landed at the bottom and met a big old mole.''
 +
 
 +
''The mole asked,'' "Baby boy, what are you doing here?"
 +
 
 +
"Mother dropped me, and I can't go back up."
 +
 
 +
"I can take you up there, but your family will kill me if they see me."
 +
 
 +
"I'll ask them not to hurt you."
 +
 
 +
"All right, then get on my back."
 +
 
 +
''With Karakas on its back, the mole started digging, but it wasn't going upward. It was heading deeper into the ground.''
 +
 
 +
"Stop! Why are you going down? Go any deeper, and I won't be able to breathe!"
 +
 
 +
"Your family kicked me out of their vegetable patch. I'm going to eat you, and when I'm full, I'll move to a better place to live."
 +
 
 +
''Karakas wanted to get off the mole's back but he was afraid of its big claws.''
 +
 
 +
"All right, but I've been fed golblin meat. I smell and taste horrible. If you eat me, my family will smell me on you and hunt you down, even if you hide deep under the ground."
 +
 
 +
"Then what should I do?"
 +
 
 +
"Let me drink some milk. It'll get rid of the goblin odor. You can eat me afterward."
 +
 
 +
"All right, then where can I find milk?"
 +
 
 +
"Go over the hill, and you'll see dairy cows grazing in the fields. They can give me their milk."
 +
 
 +
''The old mole wondered if Karakas was lying but it was true that human children drank milk. the mole thought for a second, and then decided to take the boy to the dairy cows.''
 +
 
 +
''The fields were far away. It would've been faster if the mole ran across the ground, but moles can't tolerate the sunlight. It had to stay underground with Karakas weighing down on it.''
 +
 
 +
''Quickly, the mole got tired and started panting, but Karakas didn't try to run. He knew the mole was faster than him underground. It would catch up with him quickly, even if he ran.''
 +
 
 +
''Karakas kept his tight grasp on the mole's whiskers and urged him to move more quickly. He even fell asleep, bored on the long ride, convincing the mole with his act.''
 +
 
 +
''When they finally arrived at the fields, the old mole was so winded that he couldn't talk, but he was determined to feast on the child's soft flesh. He slowly but steadily went up the tunnel to get to the dairy cows.''
 +
 
 +
''As soon as they came out of the tunnel, Karakas jumped and grabbed the long tail of a dairy cow with all his might. Panicked, the cow started bucking and thrashing her tail. The mole didn't have any strength left in it to avoid the cow's attack.''
 +
 
 +
''The cow's hard hooves sent the mole flying. The mole landed on a beehive, upsetting its residents.''
 +
 +
''The evil mole was stung to death by the bees, and the baby Karakas went back home safely to his mother.''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Great Adventurer Karakas: Chapter 2
 
|Title=Great Adventurer Karakas: Chapter 2
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
Line 476: Line 590:
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
+
'''Human'''
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Broad and Shallow Knowledge for Refined Aradians: Chapter 2
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Great Metastasis'''
 
  
Myre's Great Pentacles were destroyed by the Great Fire that burned Grand Flores to the ground and then restored by the sacrifice of the Elves, but they were never recovered from the initial damage. They continued to grow weak and eventually allowed an interdimensional rutpure, which led to the great explosion of the Metastasis.
+
A race that has been around since the genesis of Arad along with the Elves. With their short lifespan and frail bodies, the Humans have a number of weaknesses that they endlessly strive to challenge and overcome.
  
The explosion sent the Metastasis energy spreading across Arad, causing mutation in monsters and Humans alike, turning places upside-down with its anti-gravitational impact.  
+
After the Elves have disappeared, the Humans have taken over the continent of Arad, becoming one of the most powerful races in existence.
  
Underfoot, the subterranean city of the Dark Elves, rose above ground, and the ground water started soaring through the sky and merged into the Middle Ocean.
+
'''Empyrean'''
  
The Metastasis energy that exploded during the Great Metastasis still remains in Arad, exerting its influence.
+
A race with notably long limbs. The Empyreans reside in the world located above the Middle Ocean. Not much else about this race is known to Aradians since they lost their connection to Empyreans a thousand years ago.
  
'''Metastasis'''
+
'''Dark Elf'''
  
A blanket term that refers to everything (including creatures, buildings, and regions) which has been transported over to Arad due to the phenomenon of the Dimensional Warp.
+
A tribe of Elves with dark skin and silvery white hair. The Dark Elves live underground, avoiding all contact with the Humans and other races.  
  
No one knows how or why the Metastasis came about, but it is responsible for most of the chaos and confusion that currently occurs in Arad.
+
They are seclusive and belligerent, but their number is not big enough to pose a threat to the outside world. Physically superior to the Humans and capable of magic, the Dark Elves inspire fear and awe in their enemies.
  
'''Screaming Cavern Incident'''
+
The Dark Elves have a keen sense of sight which allows them to see at great distances, even during nighttime. Ruthless and nimble by nature, many Dark Elves make their living as assassins in various places on the continent.
  
Before the Great Metastasis, Giant Nugols crawled out of an ominous cave named the Screaming Cavern and terrorized the neighboring areas. Investigators were sent, and they found out that something stronger than the Nugols took up residence in the cavern and scared them away.
+
The recent Great Metastasis upset gravity and caused their capital city Underfoot to rise above ground, which drew attention from Human adventurers and traders from different places, marking the beginning of a new era for the Dark Elves.  
  
The Empire sent a subjugation party. It was wiped out, before it even set foot in the cave, by Apostle Sirocco, a name the party learned before its annihilation.
+
Underfoot is now opened to the outside world, and its Dark Elves, once a minority, are now exerting their influence worldwide.
  
The Empire set up a great reward for defeating the monster. A great many mages and warriors worth their salt entered the cave, but only four blade masters survived and killed Sirocco.
+
'''Bantu'''
  
They were Siran, Bwanga, Aganzo, and Vaughn. They were named the heroes who saved Arad.
+
A term that collectively refers to the small sub-tribes near Stru Mountains. It was named after an ancient hero who once conquered what is now known as Bel Myre.
  
'''Battle of the Ghost'''
+
Although the Bantus are currently divided into multiple tribes, they reunite and climb over the mountains to seek food when times are tough: during lean years or when Skasa, the Ice Dragon, wakes up from hibernation. The Bantus are bigger and stronger than average Humans.
  
A battle that helped Del Los seize the throne from the last king of the Pelos Empire and establish its legitimacy as an empire. Fought in a city named Cantion, the battle left an impression in history as it lasted over 300 years.
+
Having lived in the cold for so long, they are pugnacious and tend to indulge in excessive drinking. Their settlement was destroyed when Mount Thunderlime collapsed from the impact of the Great Metastasis, killing most of them and chasing the small number of survivors away to the Northern Shelter.
  
20,000 Pelos soldiers fought over 300,000 Del Los soldiers to defend their city. [[Descent of Sieg|Priest Sieg]], the last patriot of the Pelos Empire, employed ghosts to make up for the lack of soldiers.
+
'''Elf'''
  
The Del Los Army was superior in number, but it was helpless in the face of the ghosts. It was only able to conquer Cantion because Sieg was killed by the power of the ghosts he summoned.
+
A flawless tribe that once graced Arad with its existence. The Elves existed since the beginning of Arad. They possessed immense mana and vast knowledge, and were capable of complex magic spells. Their beautiful facial features, slender figures, translucent skin, and elongated ears with pointy tips have long been standards of beauty.
  
'''Kazan Syndrome'''
+
The Elves volunteered to keep the Arad Continent beautiful and taught the Humans myriad knowledge and magic. But some greedy Humans attacked their forests and set them ablaze in a frantic search for treasures.
  
A mental breakdown named after [[Kazan]], the god of destruction. As the symptoms progress, the patient's pupils change color and his physical capabilities improve, but his anger also overwhelms his reason, eventually turning him into a mindless monster.
+
The fire killed a great many Elves and turned the verdant forests into a desert that continued to spread.
  
Kazan Syndrome is incurable, and avoiding emotional distress is the only way to slow down its deadly effects.
+
The great mage Myre built great pentacles in the middle of the desert, and the surviving Elves gathered in Grand Flores and warded around the forest to keep Myre's pentacles safe.
  
Some patients experience mutation in one arm, which makes their condition apparent to the people around them.
+
When his pentacles were destroyed by the Great Fire, the Elves sacrificed themselves to restore the pentacles and disappeared from Arad forever.
  
'''Imposter'''
+
'''Dragon'''
  
Demons in the disguise of man. [[Ozma]], having become a god of chaos through the contract he made with the Reaper, wielded the power of the Curse of Blood, which turns its victims into Imposters.  
+
The Dragons have a greater capacity for mana than the Humans and use their own magic system. They have two forms that they can take at will: Human and Dragon.
  
Those who are attacked by Imposters also became Imposters. Because the Imposters are not distinguishable from normal people by the way they look, mistrust was once prevalent among the general populace and not a small number of people were killed in the witch hunt.
+
They lived in the depths of Arad to avoid conflict with warlike Humans, but the Empire, worried that the Dragons might pose a threat to Arad in the future, tracked them down, killed any dissidents, and kept the remaining Dragons under strict surveillance.
  
Only Priests can identify Imposters. Most Imposters were eliminated during the Black Crusade, but some survived.
+
Less aggressive Dragons choose to live among the Humans and pursue peace in Arad, whereas those who are furious at the Empire have become terrorists, working to tip Arad and seize power.
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Broad and Shallow Knowledge for Refined Aradians: Chapter 3
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''De Los Empire'''
 
  
An empire which has risen from the remains of the Pelos Empire. It's a centralized state governed by an emperor, and its capital city is Vitalon, the City of Gold, in the 1st Province.
+
'''Monster'''
  
Centered around Palo Bay, the De Los Empire is divided into south and north, which are commonly referred to as the 1st Province and the 2nd Province, repsectively. The two provinces differ in their political philosophies in that the 1st Province, where the central military base is located, is focused on political stability and defense, while the 2nd Province supports liberal democracy.
+
An all-encompassing term for demihuman races and other creatures that have undergone mutations during the Great Metastasis. All monsters are naturally violent and wicked, but some people believe such traits are the side effects of the Metastasis effects.
  
However, the two share a long-standing bond and are currently working towards unification.
+
'''Goblin'''
  
More than anything, the citizens of Del Los come together as one empire when in politically sensitive situations, and they are patrons of peace and order.
+
A less-intelligent demihuman race that existed in Arad before the Great Metastasis. The Goblins are characterized by their vicious-looking appearance and small frame. Their society focuses on physical strength to such a degree that weaker members are ostracized and, in worst cases, killed.
  
'''Fennes Kingdom'''
+
Their society is strictly hierarchical, and they divide clothes and weapons that they seized from the Humans by social rank.
  
The long-standing kingdom of the Dark Elves. It was built underground around its capital city Underfoot by Goontram the Great. The Senate was added later to complete the kingdom's government system.
+
It's suspected the Goblins were extinct when their main habitat Grand Flores, was bombarded by the Great Metastasis.
  
Since Underfoot rose above the ground, Queen Maya, a direct descendant of Goontram and a member of the royal family, took the throne and has been ruling the kingdom with assistance from Elder Saffron and other members of the Senate.
+
'''Elemental'''
  
'''Principality of Bel Myre'''
+
A race that has existed in Arad long before the Great Metastasis. They are believed to be creatures of magic, and their physiology is yet to be known.
  
The capital city is Hendon Myre. The name, Bel Myre, comes from the Elven Language which can be roughly tranlsated as "the principality of the virtuous." Empress Skardi Valour governed the state with assistance from three senators.
+
The Elementals are characterized by the natural elements of the world, and each type of Elemental possesses different properties from the others.
 
 
Its territory went as far as the Red Forest bordering the Empire and Suju. Blessed with fertile lands, Bel Myre never wanted for food.
 
 
 
The people of Bel Myre were optimistic and enjoyed artistic endeavors: painting, music, literature, publication, and many more.
 
 
 
Bel Myre took the brunt of the Great Metastasis that spread from Grand Flores, and fell after 500 years of history as most of its land became uninhabitable.
 
 
 
'''Suju'''
 
 
 
A small country located in the northwestern region of Arad. Suju's national historians insist that their country has at least two thousand years of history. The current ruler of Suju is Shonan Kay, who resides in Shonan, the capital of Suju. In addition to their extremely distinctive language and culture, the citizens of Suju look slightly different than those in other Human countries. They generally have smaller frames, and are nimble and adept at manipulating Nen. Although the people of Suju tend to be mild-tempered, many powerful Nen Masters com from the mountains, valleys, and caves gather to defend their country when they sense an impending invasion.
 
 
 
Young Nen masters run modest Nen institutes at the borders of Shonan, and high quality Katanas can be purchased at affordable prices in Suju. It is recommended that non-natives stay out of trouble, as even the most frail-looking old man in Suju may have skill that rivals a professional swordsman.
 
 
 
'''Pelos Empire'''
 
 
 
The former empire of what is currently known as the De Los Empire.
 
 
 
Much like the De Los Empire of the present, the Pelos Empire, where Kazan of Destruction and Ozma of Chaos once lived when they were still Humans, was one of the most powerful empires with notable military strength.
 
  
It was an empire with promising attributes, but it gradually declined and fell due to the Imposters when Ozma became the God of Chaos.
+
The Elementals are considered less intelligent than Humans, but the ones that have lived for a long time are stronger than the others and possess knowledge beyond the Humans' capacity.
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Broad and Shallow Knowledge for Refined Aradians: Chapter 4
+
|Title=Broad and Shallow Knowledge for Refined Aradians: Chapter 2
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''GBL Order'''
+
'''Great Metastasis'''
  
A religious order whose goal is to collect and study all the knowledge available in the world and use it to achieve ultimate knowledge.
+
Myre's Great Pentacles were destroyed by the Great Fire that burned Grand Flores to the ground and then restored by the sacrifice of the Elves, but they were never recovered from the initial damage. They continued to grow weak and eventually allowed an interdimensional rupture, which led to the great explosion of the Metastasis.
  
Leslie Bagrans discovered an ancient civilization on the back of the Behemoth and became engrossed in the depth of knowledge she found in that civilization. She rode Behemoth and traveled to collect knowledge and wisdom around the world.
+
The explosion sent the Metastasis energy spreading across Arad, causing mutation in monsters and Humans alike, turning places upside-down with its anti-gravitational impact.  
  
Upon realization that her mission could never be accomplished in her lifetime, she established GBL (Grand Blue Lore) in hopes that her followers could carry on her mission.  
+
Underfoot, the subterranean city of the Dark Elves, rose above ground, and the ground water started soaring through the sky and merged into the Middle Ocean.
  
After Leslie's death, her followers' deification of Leslie evolved into a religious organization, though the central focus of the GBL faith seems to have seems to have shifted since then from Leslie to the knowledge she sought after.
+
The Metastasis energy that exploded during the Great Metastasis still remains in Arad, exerting its influence.
  
'''Priest Order'''
+
'''Metastasis'''
  
An order of Priests formed to protect the world against Ozma, the god of chaos, and his army of Imposters. They were instrumental in sealing Ozma and winning the Black Crusade.
+
A blanket term that refers to everything (including creatures, buildings, and regions) which has been transported over to Arad due to the phenomenon of the Dimensional Warp.
 +
 
 +
No one knows how or why the Metastasis came about, but it is responsible for most of the chaos and confusion that currently occurs in Arad.
 +
 
 +
'''Screaming Cavern Incident'''
  
Its original headquarters was the Lemidia Basilica cathedral in Bel Myre. After the cathedral was destroyed in the Great Metastasis, the surviving Priests moved to Underfoot and built the new headquarters, Remidia Kathedra.
+
Before the Great Metastasis, Giant Nugols crawled out of an ominous cave named the Screaming Cavern and terrorized the neighboring areas. Investigators were sent, and they found out that something stronger than the Nugols took up residence in the cavern and scared them away.
  
The Priest Order values justice and sacrifice in the name of their god, and offers training to aspiring Priests from various places.
+
The Empire sent a subjugation party. It was wiped out, before it even set foot in the cave, by Apostle Sirocco, a name the party learned before its annihilation.
  
'''Adventurer's Guild'''
+
The Empire set up a great reward for defeating the monster. A great many mages and warriors worth their salt entered the cave, but only four blade masters survived and killed Sirocco.
  
An organization created by Karakas to unite and support adventurers scattered across Arad. It offers unlimited support and advice to all adventurers.
+
They were Siran, Bwanga, Aganzo, and Vaughn. They were named the heroes who saved Arad.
  
Those who need help from adventurers can contact them quickly through the Adventurer's Guild. The general populace welcomes this organization since it was created to manage those troublesome adventurers.
+
'''Battle of the Ghost'''
  
'''The Four Blade Masters'''
+
A battle that helped Del Los seize the throne from the last king of the Pelos Empire and establish its legitimacy as an empire. Fought in a city named Cantion, the battle left an impression in history as it lasted over 300 years.
  
All the heroes who defeated Sirocco in the Screaming Cavern are now recognized as legendary Blade Masters (Siran of Suju: Katana Master, Bwanga of the Bantus: Mace Master, Aganzo: Greatsword Master, Vaughn of the Empire: Short Sword Master).
+
20,000 Pelos soldiers fought over 300,000 Del Los soldiers to defend their city. [[Descent of Sieg|Priest Sieg]], the last patriot of the Pelos Empire, employed ghosts to make up for the lack of soldiers.
  
'''Imperial Alchemist Guild'''
+
The Del Los Army was superior in number, but it was helpless in the face of the ghosts. It was only able to conquer Cantion because Sieg was killed by the power of the ghosts he summoned.
  
A group of researchers sponsored by the powerful national policies of the De Los Empire. It's dedicated to developing lethal weapons.
+
'''Kazan Syndrome'''
  
'''Shonan Workshop'''
+
A mental breakdown named after [[Kazan]], the god of destruction. As the symptoms progress, the patient's pupils change color and his physical capabilities improve, but his anger also overwhelms his reason, eventually turning him into a mindless monster.
  
A workshop located in the capital of Suju. Employment here is coveted by people who are manually adroit and crafty, as only the best weapons and armor are manufactured at the Shonan Workshop.
+
Kazan Syndrome is incurable, and avoiding emotional distress is the only way to slow down its deadly effects.
  
The products manufactured here are mostly light and durable, and they even have mysterious powers. Their products are popular amongst adventurers, and all renowned blacksmiths strive to compete with the products of this workshop.
+
Some patients experience mutation in one arm, which makes their condition apparent to the people around them.
  
Every single product is a masterpiece, and the rarity of wares from the Shonan Workshop means that only selected adventurers can own them.
+
'''Imposter'''
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
+
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
+
Demons in the disguise of man. [[Ozma]], having become a god of chaos through the contract he made with the Reaper, wielded the power of the Curse of Blood, which turns its victims into Imposters.  
|Title=Broad and Shallow Knowledge for Refined Aradians: Chapter 5
+
 
|Width=600
+
Those who are attacked by Imposters also became Imposters. Because the Imposters are not distinguishable from normal people by the way they look, mistrust was once prevalent among the general populace and not a small number of people were killed in the witch hunt.
|Show=none
+
 
}}
+
Only Priests can identify Imposters. Most Imposters were eliminated during the Black Crusade, but some survived.
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
|}
 
 
===Alchemist's Friend===
 
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|[[File:Alchemist's Friend Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Alchemist's Friend
+
|Title=Broad and Shallow Knowledge for Refined Aradians: Chapter 3
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''Morgan:''' "Klonter. Long time, no see. How are you?"
+
'''De Los Empire'''
  
'''Klonter:''' "Morgan! It's been a while! When did you come to Underfoot?"
+
An empire which has risen from the remains of the Pelos Empire. It's a centralized state governed by an emperor, and its capital city is Vitalon, the City of Gold, in the 1st Province.
  
'''Morgan:''' "I just arrived. I wanted to see you before I go report to Her Majesty. Lami looks healthy."
+
Centered around Palo Bay, the De Los Empire is divided into south and north, which are commonly referred to as the 1st Province and the 2nd Province, respectively. The two provinces differ in their political philosophies in that the 1st Province, where the central military base is located, is focused on political stability and defense, while the 2nd Province supports liberal democracy.
  
'''Klonter:''' "By the way, what's that parcel?"
+
However, the two share a long-standing bond and are currently working towards unification.
  
'''Morgan:''' "It's for you. I've heard you were having a hard time dealing with the Dwarves."
+
More than anything, the citizens of Del Los come together as one empire when in politically sensitive situations, and they are patrons of peace and order.
  
'''Klonter:''' "How kind of you! What's inside? An invigorant of some sort?"
+
'''Fennes Kingdom'''
  
'''Morgan:''' "No. Powerful adhesive.
+
The long-standing kingdom of the Dark Elves. It was built underground around its capital city Underfoot by Goontram the Great. The Senate was added later to complete the kingdom's government system.
  
Paint gold with the adhesive, and the Dwarves will have their hands glued to the gold. While they're immobilized, perhaps you can use your power of speech to persuade them."
+
Since Underfoot rose above the ground, Queen Maya, a direct descendant of Goontram and a member of the royal family, took the throne and has been ruling the kingdom with assistance from Elder Saffron and other members of the Senate.
  
'''Klonter:''' "Mm... What if they get angry at me? I don't want to be axed to death."
+
'''Principality of Bel Myre'''
  
'''Morgan:''' "They'll get both of their hands glued to the gold in their frantic attempts to release themselves. They won't have any free hands to throw axes at you."
+
The capital city is Hendon Myre. The name, Bel Myre, comes from the Elven Language which can be roughly tranlsated as "the principality of the virtuous." Empress Skardi Valour governed the state with assistance from three senators.
  
'''Klonter:''' "It'll be like catching mosquitoes on a summer night."
+
Its territory went as far as the Red Forest bordering the Empire and Suju. Blessed with fertile lands, Bel Myre never wanted for food.
  
'''Morgan:''' "That's right. And I think this is a growth accelerator."
+
The people of Bel Myre were optimistic and enjoyed artistic endeavors: painting, music, literature, publication, and many more.
  
'''Klonter:''' "What do you mean, 'You think?'"
+
Bel Myre took the brunt of the Great Metastasis that spread from Grand Flores, and fell after 500 years of history as most of its land became uninhabitable.
  
'''Morgan:''' "I tested it on animals, and they grew quickly to twice their size! The problem is that they grew violent, too. Oh, and they grew horns out of their heads. Don't you think the Dwarves would like that?"
+
'''Suju'''
  
'''Klonter:''' "I don't think I should let you get close to the Dwarves.
+
A small country located in the northwestern region of Arad. Suju's national historians insist that their country has at least two thousand years of history. The current ruler of Suju is Shonan Kay, who resides in Shonan, the capital of Suju. In addition to their extremely distinctive language and culture, the citizens of Suju look slightly different than those in other Human countries. They generally have smaller frames, and are nimble and adept at manipulating Nen. Although the people of Suju tend to be mild-tempered, many powerful Nen Masters com from the mountains, valleys, and caves gather to defend their country when they sense an impending invasion.
  
Are those scratches on your hands? Were you hurt during an experiment?"
+
Young Nen masters run modest Nen institutes at the borders of Shonan, and high quality Katanas can be purchased at affordable prices in Suju. It is recommended that non-natives stay out of trouble, as even the most frail-looking old man in Suju may have skill that rivals a professional swordsman.
  
'''Morgan:''' "I happened to catch a little mouse on my way to the city, and it was biting me so much that I couldn't sleep. If this adventurer didn't help me, I would've lost all my skin to that mouse by now.
+
'''Pelos Empire'''
  
Anyway, you shouldn't reject my ideas so carelessly. Don't you think we can lure the Dwarves with that growth accelerator? It seems they take height and size seriously."
+
The former empire of what is currently known as the De Los Empire.
  
'''Klonter:''' "Morgan, I'm not trying to trap them. I just want to talk to them."
+
Much like the De Los Empire of the present, the Pelos Empire, where Kazan of Destruction and Ozma of Chaos once lived when they were still Humans, was one of the most powerful empires with notable military strength.
  
'''Morgan:''' "But how can you talk to someone who doesn't even show up? You need something to encourage them to come out from behind those rocks.
+
It was an empire with promising attributes, but it gradually declined and fell due to the Imposters when Ozma became the God of Chaos.
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Broad and Shallow Knowledge for Refined Aradians: Chapter 4
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''GBL Order'''
  
How about this? I've found some peculiar-looking nuts on my way to the city. I ground the shell and mixed it with alcohol. It instantly woke me up. And this..."
+
A religious order whose goal is to collect and study all the knowledge available in the world and use it to achieve ultimate knowledge.
  
'''Klonter:''' "Wait a minute. What do you have in this parcel? It seems like nothing in it is in working order."
+
Leslie Bagrans discovered an ancient civilization on the back of the Behemoth and became engrossed in the depth of knowledge she found in that civilization. She rode Behemoth and traveled to collect knowledge and wisdom around the world.
  
'''Morgan:''' "Ah, is that obvious? Truth be told, I couldn't come up with a subject for my thesis. After I report to Her Highness on the ecosystem of Silver Crown, I'll have to drop by the Academy to turn in my thesis. But I've been so busy with things in Silver Crown that I forgot all about it.
+
Upon realization that her mission could never be accomplished in her lifetime, she established GBL (Grand Blue Lore) in hopes that her followers could carry on her mission.  
  
I got anxious, so I messed with the things I found on the road."
+
After Leslie's death, her followers' deification of Leslie evolved into a religious organization, though the central focus of the GBL faith seems to have seems to have shifted since then from Leslie to the knowledge she sought after.
  
'''Klonter:''' "Sigh... Are you telling me you've created all these formulas on your way here from Silver Crown? To, what, kill time? Geez, Morgan! This is enough to reduce Underfoot to rubble!"
+
'''Priest Order'''
  
'''Morgan:''' "...Mm? Hm..."
+
An order of Priests formed to protect the world against Ozma, the god of chaos, and his army of Imposters. They were instrumental in sealing Ozma and winning the Black Crusade.
  
'''Klonter:''' "No. Don't even think about reducing Underfoot to rubble!"
+
Its original headquarters was the Lemidia Basilica cathedral in Bel Myre. After the cathedral was destroyed in the Great Metastasis, the surviving Priests moved to Underfoot and built the new headquarters, Remidia Kathedra.
  
'''Morgan:''' "Kill time? Hm, that's a good concept. Maybe I should title my thesis 'interesting formulas to kill time with.' It may not sound scholastic enough, but I can always say that it can contribute to making chemistry more approachable to beginners. Yeah, that'll keep the geezers' mouths shut.
+
The Priest Order values justice and sacrifice in the name of their god, and offers training to aspiring Priests from various places.
  
All right, Klonter. Let me borrow your pen and paper. And Lami."
+
'''Adventurer's Guild'''
  
'''Klonter:''' "What are you going to do with my Lamina Viento?"
+
An organization created by Karakas to unite and support adventurers scattered across Arad. It offers unlimited support and advice to all adventurers.
  
'''Morgan:''' "I want to write my thesis someplace quiet. And I want to find such a place quickly, before these ideas in my head evaporate because of all the noise in Underfoot."
+
Those who need help from adventurers can contact them quickly through the Adventurer's Guild. The general populace welcomes this organization since it was created to manage those troublesome adventurers.
  
'''Klonter:''' "I'll let you use my Lamina Viento, but I don't want any of your strange chemicals to touch or get near her. Got it?"
+
'''The Four Blade Masters'''
  
'''Morgan:''' "Hm..."
+
All the heroes who defeated Sirocco in the Screaming Cavern are now recognized as legendary Blade Masters (Siran of Suju: Katana Master, Bwanga of the Bantus: Mace Master, Aganzo: Greatsword Master, Vaughn of the Empire: Short Sword Master).
  
'''Klonter:''' "I said no."
+
'''Imperial Alchemist Guild'''
  
'''Morgan:''' "All right. We'll be back soon. Could you report to Her Majesty on my behalf? Tell her I had something more urgent to do. Here's my report. Thanks!"
+
A group of researchers sponsored by the powerful national policies of the De Los Empire. It's dedicated to developing lethal weapons.
  
'''Klonter:''' "What? Hey, Morgan! Morgan!"
+
'''Shonan Workshop'''
  
'''Sharan:''' "Hello. I came to pick up Morgan, so we could enter the palace together. ...Let me guess: he ran, again. How did he do it this time?"
+
A workshop located in the capital of Suju. Employment here is coveted by people who are manually adroit and crafty, as only the best weapons and armor are manufactured at the Shonan Workshop.
  
'''Klonter:''' "Hah... Hah hah hah! He hates rules and feels uncomfortable around courtiers. Sometimes I wonder why he didn't become an adventurer."
+
The products manufactured here are mostly light and durable, and they even have mysterious powers. Their products are popular amongst adventurers, and all renowned blacksmiths strive to compete with the products of this workshop.
  
'''Sharan:''' "I see. But he still needs to report to Her Majesty."
+
Every single product is a masterpiece, and the rarity of wares from the Shonan Workshop means that only selected adventurers can own them.
 
 
'''Klonter:''' "He left his report with me. I guess I'll have to go on his behalf. Because of Morgan, I'm actually learning more about alchemy, but I'm not sure if that's a good thing."
 
 
 
'''Sharan:''' "...Morgan is a peculiar guy."
 
 
 
'''Klonter:''' "Sigh..."
 
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
|}
 
 
===Low Ranking Knight Training Journal===
 
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|[[File:Low Ranking Knight Training Journal Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Low Ranking Knight Training Journal: Chapter 1
+
|Title=Broad and Shallow Knowledge for Refined Aradians: Chapter 5
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''September 4''
+
'''Queen Maya'''
  
''Today my training period ended and the successful candidates were announced. I barely ate breakfast and headed out to the announcement center, and Mom followed me to the entrance, going on at nothing and everything. "You're the only hope for this family." "Listen to your seniors." Mom worries too much, as always.''
+
The current queen of the Dark Elves. She has a reputation for rationality and composure, two rare qualities found in someone so young. After Underfoot rose above ground from the impact of the Great Metastasis, she opened the city to the outside world and transformed it into a hub for adventurers.
  
''The announcement center was already packed with low-ranking knights. Every time someone's name was called, the people got rowdy even if that person didn't pass, delaying the announcing process. When that wench Marie started jumping and screaming that she passed, I wanted to slap her senseless.''
+
'''Skadi Valour Myre'''
  
''Anyway, I didn't care for all the noises, but... I PASSED! I even tied for second place with some boy! I wish I won first place, but I'm still happy that I've been assigned to the Iron Wolves led by Sir Vaughn Walshuted! Hurrah! Thank you, gods! By the way, I wonder where that boy who tied for second place with me went to. I want to see how good he is.''"
+
The queen of Bel Myre was the daughter of an affluent merchant who married the Crown Prince. She began governing the kingdom shortly after their marriage, when the prince quite suddenly fell ill.
  
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''I said you could write as you please, but don't write too childishly. As far as I know, Hemon Derike has been assigned to the Guardian Knights unit under Count Serons.''"
+
After her husband's untimely death, she gathered her following and rose to the throne. She is considered the most charismatic political leader in Bel Myre's history.
  
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''September 5
+
She disappeared when the Great Metastasis destroyed Bel Myre, and remains missing.
  
''Battle assembly training hours in the Second Training Ground. Lasted a few hours. A welcoming party at 7 p.m. The food wasn't good. The Knight Master was absent.''"
+
'''Vaughn Walshuted'''
  
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''If you didn't like the food, why did you eat so much? The knight Master was there. You kept throwing dumplings at him. Don't you remember? Stop drinking so much. And write in more detail. This is too short to be helpful.''"
+
A Blade Master of the Empire. He was the Short Sword Master who fought Sirocco in the Screaming Cavern. He was made a baron when he returned to the Empire after defeating Sirocco.
  
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''September 6''
+
Currently, he is the leader of the Iron Wolves, a group of knights under the direct command of the emperor.
  
''The swordsmanship training began at 5:32:23 a.m. in the Second Training Ground and lasted for 3 hours and 42 minutes. walked 14 minutes to the cafeteria. Waited in line for 12 minutes to get my food.''
+
'''Siran'''
  
''Today's menu was marinade meat, boiled beans, boiled potatoes, pickles, and cheese and broccoli soup. The marinade meat wasn't chewy, but overcooked. The boiled beans weren't cooked thoroughly and smelled. 23 people complained about them. The boiled potatoes were cold and weren't received well, but they were not too big and cooked thoroughly. They weren't too bad. I like the soup, but it could've been better without the broccoli. The pickles... Sorry, I ran out of space.''"
+
The Katana Master among the Four Blade Masters who fought Sirocco in the Screaming Cavern. In his youth, he traveled around Arad and made his name known. Despite his reputation as a great Knight Master, he has only one student.
  
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''If you'd like to go into such detail, then write like this: "Practiced swordsmanship from 5:30 a.m. for 4 hours. Breakfast afterward." By the way, why did you spend so much time writing about the breakfast instead of your training?''"
+
'''Aganzo'''
  
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''September 7''
+
The Greatsword Master among the Four Blade Masters who fought Sirocco in the Screaming Cavern. He is quiet and likes to keep to himself. Before the Screaming Cavern, he wandered arond the continent on his own.
  
''The swordsmanship training was so tough that I can barely hold a pen. My arm shakes so much that I keep dripping ink. Today I've learned to practice my swordsmanship harder. Thank you.''"
+
'''Bwanga'''
  
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''You got to be kidding me. Come to me as soon as you read this!''"
+
The Mace Master among the Four Blade Masters who fought Sirocco in the Screaming Cavern. The chief of the Bantus. This hulking giant carries a great mace that he has inherited from the former chief.
  
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''September 8''
+
He is proud and amibitious, and reputed as a magnanimous hero.
  
''It's my day off. I ate home-cooked meals, and bought some nice dagger, hair ties, shoes, and cookies. So happy! P.S.) Deputy Master, you said I could write anything I wanted. This is okay, right?''"
+
'''Shonan Aska'''
  
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''Yes, knock yourself out. I can't seem to make you get the hang of this. Just try to write something more useful, all right?''"
+
The current queen of Suju. Born with a great aptitude for fighting, she has attained the title of Nen Master early in her life. When she was twelve, she left on a journey to see the world and put herself to the test against worthy opponents.
  
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''September 9''
+
She ascended to the throne after the death of Shonan Kay the Wise King, and has been trying to abolish the long-standing isolation policy of her country.
  
''Well today was a shocker: Knight Master Vaughn Walshuted is married. I'm so devastated that I don't want to do anything.''"
+
'''Blade Master Soldoros'''
  
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''I told you to write something useful. How can this help me help you improve? You're writing this journal for both of us. Stop writing something so personal.''"
+
A legendary Blade Master who is believed to be apt with thousands of weapons. He was the owner of the Weapon Selector that is rumored to resonate with a surrounding weapon and intensify its power.
  
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''September 10''
+
His favorite sword was Agathas Clararis, which identified itself as female. Soldoros's sole purpose in life was to master his swordsmanship and pit himself against worthy opponents.
  
''The stray dog I picked up a couple of days ago keeps barking in the nighttime, making Fiona angry at me. What should I do?''"
+
'''Myre'''
 
 
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''So it was you. Bring that dog, now!''"
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Low Ranking Knight Training Journal: Chapter 2
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''October 4''
 
 
 
''Today marks the 30th day since I joined the Knights. At the end of our training, the Deputy Master gathered us low-ranking knights and praised us for our good work. I almost wept. All the hardship I had to endure flashed through my mind.''
 
  
''The Deputy Master then announced the test results. Gina, Bessy, Don, and Gail failed, and Fiona, Dan, and I passed. I thought I didn't worry too much, but I felt so relieved after I heard my results. Those who failed will be sent back to the training camp. Gina said she'd quit. Finally, she realized that she wasn't cut out for knight. I hated that girl for bragging about her wealthy family. And finally Dolores has been knighted today! This would've happened a long time ago if she were a noble, but I'm happy for her. I hope I can be like her soon... Well, I will!''
+
A great mage best known for creating the great pentacles that turned Hendon Myre from a desert into a paradise. His incredible powers were the envy of even the Elves, the original practitioners of magic. He had a great appreciation for the color white.
  
''Oh, and the Deputy Master said he would stop checking my journal as of today. I'm glad because having my journal checked by him every day has made me feel as if I've gone back to elementary school, but I liked the chance to communicate with the Deputy Master on personal levels. He mostly yelled at me, but I don't think that would reflect badly on my performance... yet. Ah, can I really write anything I want now? I hope the Knight Master will come to see us training tomorrow, but I doubt he'd have time. He's always busy.''
+
When he first revealed himself in public, he took the form of a young man, but he spoke in the manner of an old man, confusing the people around him.
  
''I want to stay home and do nothing. I want a new sword. I was annoyed by some adventurer I saw in the tavern today. I want to eat apples. I want to be knighted soon. Argh, I'm so sleepy! Can I skip the morning training session?''"
+
He was optimistic and loved nature. Having taken pity on the Elves who lost their forests because of some greedy Humans, he created the great pentacles that transformed the barren land of the Elves into a verdant paradise.
  
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''I knew you were stupid, but not this damn stupid. Why did you leave your journal on my desk in the morning today? For a moment, I wondered if I didn't talk to you yesterday. Starting tomorrow, you'll wake up an hour earlier and run laps around the training ground until you don't feel sleepy anymore.''"
+
The work was so exhaustive that he forever lost his magic power and could no longer maintain his youthful appearance.
  
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''October 5. I almost died today.''
+
Before he disappeared, he was believed to have written a grimoire known as the Anti Enbi. His great pentacles were destroyed in the Great Fire along with Grand Flores.
  
''I was running laps around the training ground, half-awake, when I crashed into a wall headfirst. The Deputy Master hit the roof. The entire unit of the low-ranking knights had to run laps around the training round all morning. In the afternoon, all the Knights had to run to the top of Mount Proxyl. The basic training continued into the night...''
+
'''Michael of the Holy Eye'''
  
''Fiona almost killed me. So did Grey, a senior who's been so generous about my mistakes. Well, so did everyone else in the Knights. I think I'm going to buy everyone lunch tomorrow. There goes my entire month's salary... Why am I such a sleepyhead?''"
+
The first saint who received a revelation from his god, and one of the Five Holy Men who led the Priests to victory in the Black Crusade. He created the Divine Combat Techniques, the art of combat unique to the Priests.
  
''October 8''
+
He was blessed by his god to remain young, and his blue eyes are believed to see through disguises.
  
''The Knight master showed up for the first time after a long time and bought everyone dinner. In the diner, he announced that we wold go to the old Principality on a special mission. He didn't go into detail. Everyone stopped eating and stared at him with their mouths agape. What are we going to do there? Dan said we were lucky that we weren't sent to the north, but to me, the ruins of the old Principality is just as bad. What's going on in there?''
+
He rallied Priests, taught them how to distinguish the Imposters from ordinary people, led them to victory in the Black Crusade, and restored the world order.
  
''October 11''
+
He disappeared, but the Priests believe that he will return when disaster befalls Arad.
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
  
''The date of our deployment has been announced. Everyone is stunned that we're leaving on such short notice. Are we going to war? I'm happy to fight those damnable Dark Elves. Not knowing what we're supposed to do is so frustrating. The Knight Master and the Deputy Master have been away all day, probably busy meeting with some courtiers. Is something serious going on?''
+
===Alchemist's Friend===
 
+
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
''October 15''
+
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
+
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
''Everyone's whispering that something big has happened. I hope it's true. The Knight Master made his name known as a great sword master when he was my age. I want an opportunity like that. I'd like to lead the knights alongside the Knight Master. But that'll take more than my ability. My family is not powerful enough. Well, I can't help it. I'll try to distinguish myself through this long-term mission and see what that leads me to.''
+
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
+
|[[File:Alchemist's Friend Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Low Ranking Knight Training Journal: Chapter 3
+
|Title=Alchemist's Friend
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''July 2. Wow, this is already the fifth installment of my training journal.''
+
'''Morgan:''' "Klonter. Long time, no see. How are you?"
  
''We've ridden a Magatha of the Dark Elves and arrived atop Behemoth. I was scared to death, but I didn't want to give Fiona the satisfaction of seeing me scared senseless. That wench wants to humiliate me in front of the Knight Master every chance she gets. She chortled the last time the Deputy Master yelled at me. I hate her more than I hate the adventurer these days. I'd better go to sleep. It's going to be a busy day tomorrow.''
+
'''Klonter:''' "Morgan! It's been a while! When did you come to Underfoot?"
  
''July 15''
+
'''Morgan:''' "I just arrived. I wanted to see you before I go report to Her Majesty. Lami looks healthy."
  
''More things have happened than I can remember, but the most impressive of them all was that I've met the Blade Masters. They've trained their physical abilities to such a degree that they practically glide when they walk. Now I think I know what the Deputy Master has been trying to tell me. I've known the Knight Master is one of the Blade Masters, but it's hard to remember when he acts so silly all the time. Anyway, today I've discovered new facets about my two leaders, and realized it's important to meet many people.''
+
'''Klonter:''' "By the way, what's that parcel?"
  
''And the Middle Ocean! Who knew I'd be able to breathe underwater? It was an incredible experience. Hearing about it was completely different from doing it myself. Maybe this is why adventurers love what they do... although most of them do more harm than good to everything around them.''
+
'''Morgan:''' "It's for you. I've heard you were having a hard time dealing with the Dwarves."
  
''July 28''
+
'''Klonter:''' "How kind of you! What's inside? An invigorant of some sort?"
  
''The air is thick with tension. The Knight Master has been angry at something, and the Deputy Master has been curt and businesslike to us. We've been on some investigation, but what we're looking for is beyond me. I'm just following my orders, but I have a strange feeling about all this. Even the people of the GBL Order have been restless. What on earth is going on?''
+
'''Morgan:''' "No. Powerful adhesive.
  
''July 30''
+
Paint gold with the adhesive, and the Dwarves will have their hands glued to the gold. While they're immobilized, perhaps you can use your power of speech to persuade them."
  
''I haven't been under the weather these days. I chalked it up to the tension I'd been feeling, but then I was told it was because of the Apostle. The Knight Master defeated an Apostle in the Screaming Cavern. Are we fighting another?''
+
'''Klonter:''' "Mm... What if they get angry at me? I don't want to be axed to death."
  
''August 3''
+
'''Morgan:''' "They'll get both of their hands glued to the gold in their frantic attempts to release themselves. They won't have any free hands to throw axes at you."
  
''Fiona asked me if I was scared. I said I wasn't, but I'm sure we are all terrified. She just doesn't want to admit that she's scared. The Knight Master said we might have to fight the Apostle. Most of us tensed at that revelation, but some got excited at the prospect of becoming heroes. The Deputy Master said nothing bad would happen, but I noticed he was more meticulous than usual about checking his equipment. He was the Knight Master and the Blade Masters would do the heavy lifting, so we would be all right, but I'm still nervous.''
+
'''Klonter:''' "It'll be like catching mosquitoes on a summer night."
  
''August 9''
+
'''Morgan:''' "That's right. And I think this is a growth accelerator."
  
''I'm too nervous to sleep. I thought my first battle would be against human enemies, but it's going to be against an Apostle. Can't we request reinforcements from HQ?''
+
'''Klonter:''' "What do you mean, 'You think?'"
 +
 
 +
'''Morgan:''' "I tested it on animals, and they grew quickly to twice their size! The problem is that they grew violent, too. Oh, and they grew horns out of their heads. Don't you think the Dwarves would like that?"
 +
 
 +
'''Klonter:''' "I don't think I should let you get close to the Dwarves.
  
''August 11''
+
Are those scratches on your hands? Were you hurt during an experiment?"
  
''Dan and I went to see the Deputy master. He looked tired. He said he couldn't exclude us low-ranking knights from this operation, even if he wanted to. We don't have enough manpower as it is. I know I have to be brave, but I'm scared. I won't show that to the adventurer or the GBL followers. I'll never disgrace my country like that.''
+
'''Morgan:''' "I happened to catch a little mouse on my way to the city, and it was biting me so much that I couldn't sleep. If this adventurer didn't help me, I would've lost all my skin to that mouse by now.
  
''August 12''
+
Anyway, you shouldn't reject my ideas so carelessly. Don't you think we can lure the Dwarves with that growth accelerator? It seems they take height and size seriously."
  
''I think we're leaving to fight tomorrow. I miss Mom.''
+
'''Klonter:''' "Morgan, I'm not trying to trap them. I just want to talk to them."
  
''August 13''
+
'''Morgan:''' "But how can you talk to someone who doesn't even show up? You need something to encourage them to come out from behind those rocks.
  
''We've been ordered to gather. I think we're going to leave soon. I don't care if it's an Apostle. I don't want to go... Well, I might regret it later if I blew things out of proportion. I'm going to stop writing now. I really don't want to go...''
+
How about this? I've found some peculiar-looking nuts on my way to the city. I ground the shell and mixed it with alcohol. It instantly woke me up. And this..."
  
''[Blank]''
+
'''Klonter:''' "Wait a minute. What do you have in this parcel? It seems like nothing in it is in working order."
  
''[Blank]''
+
'''Morgan:''' "Ah, is that obvious? Truth be told, I couldn't come up with a subject for my thesis. After I report to Her Highness on the ecosystem of Silver Crown, I'll have to drop by the Academy to turn in my thesis. But I've been so busy with things in Silver Crown that I forgot all about it.
  
''[Blank]''"
+
I got anxious, so I messed with the things I found on the road."
  
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''I'm sorry... Rest in peace.''"
+
'''Klonter:''' "Sigh... Are you telling me you've created all these formulas on your way here from Silver Crown? To, what, kill time? Geez, Morgan! This is enough to reduce Underfoot to rubble!"
  
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
+
'''Morgan:''' "...Mm? Hm..."
|}
 
  
===The Wind Blowing upon Empyrean===
+
'''Klonter:''' "No. Don't even think about reducing Underfoot to rubble!"
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|[[File:The Wind Blowing upon Empyrean Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=The Wind Blowing upon Empyrean: Chapter 1
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Book:''' ''"Archpriest Beldron, who commanded the Empyrean Royal Army and fended off the onslaughts of the Kartels, passed away. His death was another tragedy that struck the people of Empyrean before they overcame the damage from the Kartels. Many people wore black in honor of the dead priest, and some wailed and beat their chests as if their own parent died. But the leaders of Empyrean couldn't afford to grieve. They need to find Beldron's replacement for the stability of their nation. Usually, the next Archpriest is designated by the predecessor, and the succession ceremony was a festival that the people couldn't wait to celebrate. This time, it was different."''
 
  
'''Petra Noiman:''' "It's been ten days since Beldron's passing. We have to start making arrangements for Lady Erje's succession ceremony. The position must be filled quickly, so we can get on with recovering from the war."
+
'''Morgan:''' "Kill time? Hm, that's a good concept. Maybe I should title my thesis 'interesting formulas to kill time with.' It may not sound scholastic enough, but I can always say that it can contribute to making chemistry more approachable to beginners. Yeah, that'll keep the geezers' mouths shut.
  
'''Anje Wane:''' "I agree, but... we need to wait."
+
All right, Klonter. Let me borrow your pen and paper. And Lami."
  
'''Petra Noiman:''' "Sir Wane, what's the delay? Beldron designated her as his successor. Are you going to ignore his wish?"
+
'''Klonter:''' "What are you going to do with my Lamina Viento?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Wane's eyes narrowed angrily at Noiman's accusation."''
+
'''Morgan:''' "I want to write my thesis someplace quiet. And I want to find such a place quickly, before these ideas in my head evaporate because of all the noise in Underfoot."
  
'''Anje Wane:''' "When did I say that? I just think she's too young to shoulder the responsibility of cleaning things up after the war. She's smart, but she lacks the experience."
+
'''Klonter:''' "I'll let you use my Lamina Viento, but I don't want any of your strange chemicals to touch or get near her. Got it?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Sighs echo around the spacious meeting room. Being the Archpriest comes with great responsibility, and the position cannot be left empty. But is a girl, who grew up sheltered in a noble home, the right choice?"''
+
'''Morgan:''' "Hm..."
  
'''Petra Noiman:''' "...But no one else can replace her."
+
'''Klonter:''' "I said no."
  
'''Theresa Schultz:''' "Do we... really need an Archpriest right now?"
+
'''Morgan:''' "All right. We'll be back soon. Could you report to Her Majesty on my behalf? Tell her I had something more urgent to do. Here's my report. Thanks!"
  
'''Anje Wane:''' "What are you talking about?"
+
'''Klonter:''' "What? Hey, Morgan! Morgan!"
  
'''Theresa Schultz:''' "...It's just a thought. When the ruthless Kartels invade our capital city, what we needed wasn't a priest."
+
'''Sharan:''' "Hello. I came to pick up Morgan, so we could enter the palace together. ...Let me guess: he ran, again. How did he do it this time?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Everyone in the meeting room instantly tenses at Schultz's overt complaint."''
+
'''Klonter:''' "Hah... Hah hah hah! He hates rules and feels uncomfortable around courtiers. Sometimes I wonder why he didn't become an adventurer."
  
'''Petra Noiman:''' "Beldron knew the Kartel would be a threat, and when the war broke out, he led an army and drove away the enemy back to where they belonged: the Lawless District."
+
'''Sharan:''' "I see. But he still needs to report to Her Majesty."
  
'''Theresa Schultz:''' "You're right. He was a great commander."
+
'''Klonter:''' "He left his report with me. I guess I'll have to go on his behalf. Because of Morgan, I'm actually learning more about alchemy, but I'm not sure if that's a good thing."
  
'''Jackter:''' "..."
+
'''Sharan:''' "...Morgan is a peculiar guy."
  
'''Nevillo:''' "Now, everyone, please calm down. I know the matter of filling the Archpriest position is important. Each one of you have your own opinion on it, but I say we should finish his funeral first."
+
'''Klonter:''' "Sigh..."
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
  
'''Book:''' ''"Nevillo Jurgen, leader of House Jurgen, intervenes and breaks the tension among the others. Everyone except one person represents his house, but none of them is as influential as Jurgen or his house. Jurgen, instead of speaking his opinion, continues to cool down the heated atmosphere in the meeting room."''
+
===Low Ranking Knight Training Journal===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:Low Ranking Knight Training Journal Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Low Ranking Knight Training Journal: Chapter 1
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''September 4''
  
'''Nevillo:''' "Lady Erje is young and she's already upset at this whole thing. By arguing among us, we're only making things worse for her. I propose that we discuss this matter at a later time."
+
''Today my training period ended and the successful candidates were announced. I barely ate breakfast and headed out to the announcement center, and Mom followed me to the entrance, going on at nothing and everything. "You're the only hope for this family." "Listen to your seniors." Mom worries too much, as always.''
  
'''Anje Wane:''' "I agree with Sir Jurgen. And excuse me, I must go now."
+
''The announcement center was already packed with low-ranking knights. Every time someone's name was called, the people got rowdy even if that person didn't pass, delaying the announcing process. When that wench Marie started jumping and screaming that she passed, I wanted to slap her senseless.''
  
'''Theresa Schultz:''' "I myself have to go, too."
+
''Anyway, I didn't care for all the noises, but... I PASSED! I even tied for second place with some boy! I wish I won first place, but I'm still happy that I've been assigned to the Iron Wolves led by Sir Vaughn Walshuted! Hurrah! Thank you, gods! By the way, I wonder where that boy who tied for second place with me went to. I want to see how good he is.''"
  
'''Nevillo:''' "Sigh, everyone has his own opinion. I knew this, but it's still exhausting to deal with. I'm sorry, I shouldn't complain in front of you, General. You just returned from a battle, and you haven't even gone home yet."
+
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''I said you could write as you please, but don't write too childishly. As far as I know, Hemon Derike has been assigned to the Guardian Knights unit under Count Serons.''"
  
'''Jackter:''' "I'm all right."
+
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''September 5
  
'''Book:''' ''"Everyone else left the meeting room, leaving Jurgen and Great General Jackter Elrox alone. Jackter has been appointed the commander-in-chief of the army after Beldron's passing, but the look on his face is anything but arrogance and self-satisfaction. No one from the Lawless District has been as successful as he has. When Beldron brought him to the Imperial Capital, everyone thought that hillbilly wouldn't last long. But the Eagle Eye quickly rose through the ranks as if to disprove those who didn't believe in him, and he finally reached the highest position a soldier can achieve. Jurgen doesn't know how to deal with this man. Even with his political prowess and experience, he can barely read Jackter."''
+
''Battle assembly training hours in the Second Training Ground. Lasted a few hours. A welcoming party at 7 p.m. The food wasn't good. The Knight Master was absent.''"
  
'''Nevillo:''' "By the way, Beldron would've loved to attend you inauguration ceremony."
+
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''If you didn't like the food, why did you eat so much? The knight Master was there. You kept throwing dumplings at him. Don't you remember? Stop drinking so much. And write in more detail. This is too short to be helpful.''"
  
'''Jackter:''' "No, he would've hated the noise and garishness. Excuse me, I should leave now."
+
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''September 6''
  
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter answers like the curt soldier he is as he stands up. Jurgen follows his suit and speaks affably."''
+
''The swordsmanship training began at 5:32:23 a.m. in the Second Training Ground and lasted for 3 hours and 42 minutes. walked 14 minutes to the cafeteria. Waited in line for 12 minutes to get my food.''
 +
 
 +
''Today's menu was marinade meat, boiled beans, boiled potatoes, pickles, and cheese and broccoli soup. The marinade meat wasn't chewy, but overcooked. The boiled beans weren't cooked thoroughly and smelled. 23 people complained about them. The boiled potatoes were cold and weren't received well, but they were not too big and cooked thoroughly. They weren't too bad. I like the soup, but it could've been better without the broccoli. The pickles... Sorry, I ran out of space.''"
 +
 
 +
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''If you'd like to go into such detail, then write like this: "Practiced swordsmanship from 5:30 a.m. for 4 hours. Breakfast afterward." By the way, why did you spend so much time writing about the breakfast instead of your training?''"
 +
 
 +
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''September 7''
  
'''Nevillo:''' "Are you returning to HQ? I'm heading in the same direction. We should go together. ...What a wonderful day! If it weren't for Beldron and you, General, I wouldn't have been able to enjoy a walk through a garden on such a beautiful day."
+
''The swordsmanship training was so tough that I can barely hold a pen. My arm shakes so much that I keep dripping ink. Today I've learned to practice my swordsmanship harder. Thank you.''"
  
'''Jackter:''' "Don't thank me. Thank the soldiers."
+
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''You got to be kidding me. Come to me as soon as you read this!''"
  
'''Nevillo:''' "Hah hah. You're humble. Our soldiers are brave, but without your leadership..."
+
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''September 8''
  
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter stops striding and turns."''
+
''It's my day off. I ate home-cooked meals, and bought some nice dagger, hair ties, shoes, and cookies. So happy! P.S.) Deputy Master, you said I could write anything I wanted. This is okay, right?''"
  
'''Jackter:''' "Sir Jurgen, if you have something to say, just say it. I'm a soldier. I'm not familiar with the conversational nuances of the nobility."
+
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''Yes, knock yourself out. I can't seem to make you get the hang of this. Just try to write something more useful, all right?''"
  
'''Nevillo:''' "I just wanted to tell you that I'd like to enjoy the day now that the clouds are gone and the sun is shining."
+
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''September 9''
  
'''Jackter:''' "Clouds disperse of their own accord. Impatience cannot change that."
+
''Well today was a shocker: Knight Master Vaughn Walshuted is married. I'm so devastated that I don't want to do anything.''"
  
'''Book:''' ''"They are not talking about the weather. Jackter is smart enough to know Jurgen's hidden meaning: he just wants to survive this struggle. But Jackter has been a soldier for all his life. He's learned not to show his feelings. He responds to Jurgen curtly but not unkindly. Jurgen nods."''
+
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''I told you to write something useful. How can this help me help you improve? You're writing this journal for both of us. Stop writing something so personal.''"
  
'''Nevillo:''' "I understand. General, I'm heading this way now. I'll see you again. Maybe we should play chess together sometime."
+
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''September 10''
  
'''Jackter:''' "Sure."
+
''The stray dog I picked up a couple of days ago keeps barking in the nighttime, making Fiona angry at me. What should I do?''"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter responds a second too quickly, as if he can't wait to get away from Jurgen. Jurgen is left confused."''
+
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''So it was you. Bring that dog, now!''"
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=The Wind Blowing upon Empyrean: Chapter 2
+
|Title=Low Ranking Knight Training Journal: Chapter 2
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''Book:''' ''"Fifteen days after Beldron's passing, Jackter stands in front of a girl's chamber. He is alone without his retinue. He knocks on the door."''
+
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''October 4''
  
'''Jackter:''' "Lady Erje, this is Jackter Elrox. may I come in?"
+
''Today marks the 30th day since I joined the Knights. At the end of our training, the Deputy Master gathered us low-ranking knights and praised us for our good work. I almost wept. All the hardship I had to endure flashed through my mind.''
  
'''Erje:''' "Yes. Give me a moment. Let me open the door for you."
+
''The Deputy Master then announced the test results. Gina, Bessy, Don, and Gail failed, and Fiona, Dan, and I passed. I thought I didn't worry too much, but I felt so relieved after I heard my results. Those who failed will be sent back to the training camp. Gina said she'd quit. Finally, she realized that she wasn't cut out for knight. I hated that girl for bragging about her wealthy family. And finally Dolores has been knighted today! This would've happened a long time ago if she were a noble, but I'm happy for her. I hope I can be like her soon... Well, I will!''
  
'''Book:''' ''"The rich mahogany door opens quietly. A girl, whose height barely reaches the waist of the towering general, appears behind the door and nervously looks up at the general."''
+
''Oh, and the Deputy Master said he would stop checking my journal as of today. I'm glad because having my journal checked by him every day has made me feel as if I've gone back to elementary school, but I liked the chance to communicate with the Deputy Master on personal levels. He mostly yelled at me, but I don't think that would reflect badly on my performance... yet. Ah, can I really write anything I want now? I hope the Knight Master will come to see us training tomorrow, but I doubt he'd have time. He's always busy.''
  
'''Erje:''' "Hello, General. Are you not busy with your shooting training today?"
+
''I want to stay home and do nothing. I want a new sword. I was annoyed by some adventurer I saw in the tavern today. I want to eat apples. I want to be knighted soon. Argh, I'm so sleepy! Can I skip the morning training session?''"
  
'''Jackter:''' "I've done it for so long that my fingers are stiff. They need a break sometimes."
+
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''I knew you were stupid, but not this damn stupid. Why did you leave your journal on my desk in the morning today? For a moment, I wondered if I didn't talk to you yesterday. Starting tomorrow, you'll wake up an hour earlier and run laps around the training ground until you don't feel sleepy anymore.''"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Erje looks surprised."''
+
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''October 5. I almost died today.''
  
'''Erje:''' "Huh? Your fingers are stiff? How long do you shoot your gun for your fingers to get stiff?"
+
''I was running laps around the training ground, half-awake, when I crashed into a wall headfirst. The Deputy Master hit the roof. The entire unit of the low-ranking knights had to run laps around the training round all morning. In the afternoon, all the Knights had to run to the top of Mount Proxyl. The basic training continued into the night...''
  
'''Jackter:''' "Hah hah, longer than I care to remember."
+
''Fiona almost killed me. So did Grey, a senior who's been so generous about my mistakes. Well, so did everyone else in the Knights. I think I'm going to buy everyone lunch tomorrow. There goes my entire month's salary... Why am I such a sleepyhead?''"
  
'''Erje:''' "All right."
+
''October 8''
  
'''Jackter:''' "I came to see how you've been since Beldron's passing. Are you all right?"
+
''The Knight master showed up for the first time after a long time and bought everyone dinner. In the diner, he announced that we wold go to the old Principality on a special mission. He didn't go into detail. Everyone stopped eating and stared at him with their mouths agape. What are we going to do there? Dan said we were lucky that we weren't sent to the north, but to me, the ruins of the old Principality is just as bad. What's going on in there?''
  
'''Erje:''' "...I want to go home."
+
''October 11''
  
'''Book:''' ''"She sounds small and resigned, like a saddened child she is. She hesitates, then adds."''
+
''The date of our deployment has been announced. Everyone is stunned that we're leaving on such short notice. Are we going to war? I'm happy to fight those damnable Dark Elves. Not knowing what we're supposed to do is so frustrating. The Knight Master and the Deputy Master have been away all day, probably busy meeting with some courtiers. Is something serious going on?''  
  
'''Erje:''' "This place is scary."
+
''October 15''
  
'''Jackter:''' "I often want to go home myself."
+
''Everyone's whispering that something big has happened. I hope it's true. The Knight Master made his name known as a great sword master when he was my age. I want an opportunity like that. I'd like to lead the knights alongside the Knight Master. But that'll take more than my ability. My family is not powerful enough. Well, I can't help it. I'll try to distinguish myself through this long-term mission and see what that leads me to.''
 
+
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
'''Erje:''' "Mister? I mean, General. Where's your home?"
+
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
+
|Title=Low Ranking Knight Training Journal: Chapter 3
'''Jackter:''' "In Wespeace. I haven't been home for a while."
+
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book (Lenny):''' "''July 2. Wow, this is already the fifth installment of my training journal.''
  
'''Erje:''' "Why?"
+
''We've ridden a Magatha of the Dark Elves and arrived atop Behemoth. I was scared to death, but I didn't want to give Fiona the satisfaction of seeing me scared senseless. That wench wants to humiliate me in front of the Knight Master every chance she gets. She chortled the last time the Deputy Master yelled at me. I hate her more than I hate the adventurer these days. I'd better go to sleep. It's going to be a busy day tomorrow.''
  
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter debates if he should tell the truth to a little girl, then decides to be honest like he always is."''
+
''July 15''
  
'''Jackter:''' "I wanted to bring my wife and daughter to the Imperial City, but they didn't want to leave. I regret leaving them."
+
''More things have happened than I can remember, but the most impressive of them all was that I've met the Blade Masters. They've trained their physical abilities to such a degree that they practically glide when they walk. Now I think I know what the Deputy Master has been trying to tell me. I've known the Knight Master is one of the Blade Masters, but it's hard to remember when he acts so silly all the time. Anyway, today I've discovered new facets about my two leaders, and realized it's important to meet many people.''
  
'''Erje:''' "Mm. You're the commander-in-chief. Can't you send your soldiers to fetch your family?"
+
''And the Middle Ocean! Who knew I'd be able to breathe underwater? It was an incredible experience. Hearing about it was completely different from doing it myself. Maybe this is why adventurers love what they do... although most of them do more harm than good to everything around them.''
  
'''Jackter:''' "That's a good idea, but the war just ended and I can't mobilize soldiers for personal reasons. They're exhausted from the fighting. They need to go home and rest."
+
''July 28''
  
'''Erje:''' "Good for them. I want to go home, too."
+
''The air is thick with tension. The Knight Master has been angry at something, and the Deputy Master has been curt and businesslike to us. We've been on some investigation, but what we're looking for is beyond me. I'm just following my orders, but I have a strange feeling about all this. Even the people of the GBL Order have been restless. What on earth is going on?''
  
'''Jackter:''' "Lady Erje, how long have you been in this place? Six months? You must miss your family."
+
''July 30''
  
'''Erje:''' "I do. But you're not going to send me back home, are you? Mom said I have to stay here."
+
''I haven't been under the weather these days. I chalked it up to the tension I'd been feeling, but then I was told it was because of the Apostle. The Knight Master defeated an Apostle in the Screaming Cavern. Are we fighting another?''
  
'''Jackter:''' "She's right."
+
''August 3''
  
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter doesn't try to gloss over the facts. He knows she already knows the truth."''
+
''Fiona asked me if I was scared. I said I wasn't, but I'm sure we are all terrified. She just doesn't want to admit that she's scared. The Knight Master said we might have to fight the Apostle. Most of us tensed at that revelation, but some got excited at the prospect of becoming heroes. The Deputy Master said nothing bad would happen, but I noticed he was more meticulous than usual about checking his equipment. He was the Knight Master and the Blade Masters would do the heavy lifting, so we would be all right, but I'm still nervous.''
  
'''Erje:''' "I knew it beforehand, that I'd come here. I don't know how, but I knew that I'd be sitting in a big room, alone."
+
''August 9''
  
'''Jackter:''' "You won't be alone. We're here with you."
+
''I'm too nervous to sleep. I thought my first battle would be against human enemies, but it's going to be against an Apostle. Can't we request reinforcements from HQ?''
  
'''Erje:''' "Yes..."
+
''August 11''
  
'''Book:''' ''"Erje just answers halfheartedly. She's tired of insincere consolation. Jackter continues."''
+
''Dan and I went to see the Deputy master. He looked tired. He said he couldn't exclude us low-ranking knights from this operation, even if he wanted to. We don't have enough manpower as it is. I know I have to be brave, but I'm scared. I won't show that to the adventurer or the GBL followers. I'll never disgrace my country like that.''
  
'''Jackter:''' "But we can't make things less hard than they are for you. Sadness and loneliness are a given. For now, you can cry when you're sad, and laugh when you're happy."
+
''August 12''
  
'''Erje:''' "For now?"
+
''I think we're leaving to fight tomorrow. I miss Mom.''
  
'''Jackter:''' "Later you might have to cry when you're happy and laugh when sad. Being a leader is a lonely job. You'll have to hide your feelings, or others will walk all over you."
+
''August 13''
  
'''Erje:''' "I don't want to be a leader."
+
''We've been ordered to gather. I think we're going to leave soon. I don't care if it's an Apostle. I don't want to go... Well, I might regret it later if I blew things out of proportion. I'm going to stop writing now. I really don't want to go...''
  
'''Jackter:''' "Neither do I, but I don't have the power to change this reality."
+
''[Blank]''
  
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter pauses and debates if he should continue. It's risky to do so, but Jackter decides to bet on Erje's intelligence and Beldron's decision in designating her as his successor."''
+
''[Blank]''
  
'''Jackter:''' "The Archpriest is an unstable position. It's supposed to be the center of this empire, but it doesn't come with the authority expected for such an important position. The Archpriest is always questioned and has to assume responsibility that no one else wants. But that's a burden you'll have to shoulder."
+
''[Blank]''"
  
'''Erje:''' "..."
+
'''Book (Hartz):''' "''I'm sorry... Rest in peace.''"
  
'''Jackter:''' "People will call you a puppet, a tool. You need to learn to ignore them. Don't become an Archpriest whom they can manipulate easily. Be the empress."
+
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
  
'''Erje:''' "The empress?"
+
===The Wind Blowing upon Empyrean===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:The Wind Blowing upon Empyrean Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=The Wind Blowing upon Empyrean: Chapter 1
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book:''' ''"Archpriest Beldron, who commanded the Empyrean Royal Army and fended off the onslaughts of the Kartels, passed away. His death was another tragedy that struck the people of Empyrean before they overcame the damage from the Kartels. Many people wore black in honor of the dead priest, and some wailed and beat their chests as if their own parent died. But the leaders of Empyrean couldn't afford to grieve. They need to find Beldron's replacement for the stability of their nation. Usually, the next Archpriest is designated by the predecessor, and the succession ceremony was a festival that the people couldn't wait to celebrate. This time, it was different."''
  
'''Book:''' ''"Erje blinks her eyes in confusion. She's never heard of the word empress before. Jackter nods to emphasize what he's about to say."''
+
'''Petra Noiman:''' "It's been ten days since Beldron's passing. We have to start making arrangements for Lady Erje's succession ceremony. The position must be filled quickly, so we can get on with recovering from the war."
  
'''Jackter:''' "This country has the structure of a sand castle. There are too many noblemen. All the power is diffused. Empyrean will collapse if another formidable enemy like Bakal appears. And your family and friends will die. You must unite this country and keep it solid. I'll help you."
+
'''Anje Wane:''' "I agree, but... we need to wait."
  
'''Erje:''' "Um... I don't know. Why can't you be the emperor?"
+
'''Petra Noiman:''' "Sir Wane, what's the delay? Beldron designated her as his successor. Are you going to ignore his wish?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Scared Erje is all but whimpering. Jackter shakes his head."''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Wane's eyes narrowed angrily at Noiman's accusation."''
  
'''Jackter:''' "I can't. I've been a soldier for so long that I can only see black and white. And if I rise to the throne... Well, maybe I have the power to do so, but that'll leave a bad example: people will think anybody can overthrow the government if he has the power. And there's a more important reason."
+
'''Anje Wane:''' "When did I say that? I just think she's too young to shoulder the responsibility of cleaning things up after the war. She's smart, but she lacks the experience."
  
'''Erje:''' "Yes?"
+
'''Book:''' ''"Sighs echo around the spacious meeting room. Being the Archpriest comes with great responsibility, and the position cannot be left empty. But is a girl, who grew up sheltered in a noble home, the right choice?"''
  
'''Jackter:''' "I hate being tied down by the rules. When I'm off for the day, I want to go to see the ocean and talk to my friends over a drink. Emperors can't do that."
+
'''Petra Noiman:''' "...But no one else can replace her."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter sounds as if playing is more important than anything else. Erje giggles."''
+
'''Theresa Schultz:''' "Do we... really need an Archpriest right now?"
  
'''Erje:''' "But I like to play, too."
+
'''Anje Wane:''' "What are you talking about?"
  
'''Jackter:''' "If you want, you can find your replacement and run. Do you want to do that?"
+
'''Theresa Schultz:''' "...It's just a thought. When the ruthless Kartels invade our capital city, what we needed wasn't a priest."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Erje tilts her head and thinks. She sticks her tongue out, then smiles."''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Everyone in the meeting room instantly tenses at Schultz's overt complaint."''
  
'''Erje:''' "Then someone else has to sit in this room, alone. No, I don't want that. And Mister? Oops, I mean, General. You're the strongest man in this country, right?"
+
'''Petra Noiman:''' "Beldron knew the Kartel would be a threat, and when the war broke out, he led an army and drove away the enemy back to where they belonged: the Lawless District."
  
'''Jackter:''' "Yes. I happen to be that person."
+
'''Theresa Schultz:''' "You're right. He was a great commander."
  
'''Erje:''' "I'll do that if you help me. If this country is in danger, then so are the people I love. I'll make sure there will be no bullies. By the way, is the empress friends with the Archpriest?"
+
'''Jackter:''' "..."
  
'''Jackter:''' "It's a title that once existed a long time ago. The Archpriest connects God with us people, and the empress unites and leads us. Empyrean is also called an empire because it was ruled by emperors and empresses a long time ago."
+
'''Nevillo:''' "Now, everyone, please calm down. I know the matter of filling the Archpriest position is important. Each one of you have your own opinion on it, but I say we should finish his funeral first."
  
'''Erje:''' "The empress sounds scary. Isn't there a title below empress?"
+
'''Book:''' ''"Nevillo Jurgen, leader of House Jurgen, intervenes and breaks the tension among the others. Everyone except one person represents his house, but none of them is as influential as Jurgen or his house. Jurgen, instead of speaking his opinion, continues to cool down the heated atmosphere in the meeting room."''
  
'''Book:''' ''"Erje sounds serious. Jackter is at a loss: what's a title below empress? He is also an Empyrean who has never served under an emperor."''
+
'''Nevillo:''' "Lady Erje is young and she's already upset at this whole thing. By arguing among us, we're only making things worse for her. I propose that we discuss this matter at a later time."
  
'''Jackter:''' "Um, maybe imperial princess?"
+
'''Anje Wane:''' "I agree with Sir Jurgen. And excuse me, I must go now."
  
'''Erje:''' "Then I want to be called Imperial Princess."
+
'''Theresa Schultz:''' "I myself have to go, too."
  
'''Jackter:''' "But imperial princesses are the daughters of empresses and emperors... Well, you can become the empress when you grow up. We haven't had an empress for a long time. No one will care what you're called before you become an adult."
+
'''Nevillo:''' "Sigh, everyone has his own opinion. I knew this, but it's still exhausting to deal with. I'm sorry, I shouldn't complain in front of you, General. You just returned from a battle, and you haven't even gone home yet."
  
'''Book:''' ''"It suddenly hits Jackter that Beldron would've been laughing at their conversation if he was here. He determinedly shakes off the sadness and stands up from his seat."''
+
'''Jackter:''' "I'm all right."
  
'''Jackter:''' "I'm glad we've agreed to do this together. I should go now."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Everyone else left the meeting room, leaving Jurgen and Great General Jackter Elrox alone. Jackter has been appointed the commander-in-chief of the army after Beldron's passing, but the look on his face is anything but arrogance and self-satisfaction. No one from the Lawless District has been as successful as he has. When Beldron brought him to the Imperial Capital, everyone thought that hillbilly wouldn't last long. But the Eagle Eye quickly rose through the ranks as if to disprove those who didn't believe in him, and he finally reached the highest position a soldier can achieve. Jurgen doesn't know how to deal with this man. Even with his political prowess and experience, he can barely read Jackter."''
  
'''Erje:''' "Are you going to skip work again?"
+
'''Nevillo:''' "By the way, Beldron would've loved to attend you inauguration ceremony."
  
'''Jackter:''' "I'd love to, but there's no one else who can do my work. If you find someone who can, then let me know."
+
'''Jackter:''' "No, he would've hated the noise and garishness. Excuse me, I should leave now."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter raises his hand in salute and Erje imitates him in response. Jackter is about to open the door, when Erje scurries to him and pulls at his jacket hem. Jackter kneels and Erje whispers to his ear."''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter answers like the curt soldier he is as he stands up. Jurgen follows his suit and speaks affably."''
  
'''Erje:''' "If I become the imperial princess, I can fetch your daughter. Then can I be friends with her?"
+
'''Nevillo:''' "Are you returning to HQ? I'm heading in the same direction. We should go together. ...What a wonderful day! If it weren't for Beldron and you, General, I wouldn't have been able to enjoy a walk through a garden on such a beautiful day."
  
'''Jackter:''' "My daughter is older than you. You can play with her, but she'll probably act like your older sister."
+
'''Jackter:''' "Don't thank me. Thank the soldiers."
  
'''Erje:''' "Whoa, I'd love that! I've always wanted an older sister. She can be one, can't she?
+
'''Nevillo:''' "Hah hah. You're humble. Our soldiers are brave, but without your leadership..."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter snorts at Erje's seemingly innocent request."''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter stops striding and turns."''
  
'''Jackter:''' "No. I know what you're trying to do. If my daughter becomes a sister of the imperial princess, that'll make me the emperor. No way. I'm already tired of pushing paper all day."
+
'''Jackter:''' "Sir Jurgen, if you have something to say, just say it. I'm a soldier. I'm not familiar with the conversational nuances of the nobility."
  
'''Erje:''' "Beh, you're boring."
+
'''Nevillo:''' "I just wanted to tell you that I'd like to enjoy the day now that the clouds are gone and the sun is shining."
  
'''Jackter:''' "All grownups are. Now, don't go out too often. It's cold outside. I can't have you sniffle at your coronation."
+
'''Jackter:''' "Clouds disperse of their own accord. Impatience cannot change that."
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=The Wind Blowing upon Empyrean: Chapter 3
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Jackter:''' "...So I propose that we crown Lady Erje as imperial princess."
 
  
'''Book:''' ''"The meeting is to decide Erje's succession of the Archpriest. Since there is no replacement for her, the meeting is just a formality. It should have been a quiet, solemn gathering, but Commander-in-chief Jackter's almost ridiculous proposal has caused an uproar in the meeting room."''
+
'''Book:''' ''"They are not talking about the weather. Jackter is smart enough to know Jurgen's hidden meaning: he just wants to survive this struggle. But Jackter has been a soldier for all his life. He's learned not to show his feelings. He responds to Jurgen curtly but not unkindly. Jurgen nods."''
  
'''Petra Noiman:''' "Imperial princess? Imperial princess..."
+
'''Nevillo:''' "I understand. General, I'm heading this way now. I'll see you again. Maybe we should play chess together sometime."
  
'''Book:''' ''"The attending noblemen were so stunned that they're unable to speak, but Jackter remains nonchalant, almost shamelessly so. The noblemen explode with anger. Schultz angrily asks Jackter if he's insane, and then cowers quickly at Jackter's intimidating glare that has given him the nickname, Eagle Eye."''
+
'''Jackter:''' "Sure."
  
'''Theresa Schultz:''' "*Ahem* I don't doubt you've thought this through, but it's unheard of."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter responds a second too quickly, as if he can't wait to get away from Jurgen. Jurgen is left confused."''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=The Wind Blowing upon Empyrean: Chapter 2
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book:''' ''"Fifteen days after Beldron's passing, Jackter stands in front of a girl's chamber. He is alone without his retinue. He knocks on the door."''
  
'''Jackter:''' "What's unheard of is the Kartel's all-out attack. At least, since the tyrant Bakal ordered to burn all history books, it was the first biggest incident in history."
+
'''Jackter:''' "Lady Erje, this is Jackter Elrox. may I come in?"
  
'''Petra Noiman:''' "Making her imperial princess means she could become empress in the future. General Elrox, don't you know why this country abolished the title?"
+
'''Erje:''' "Yes. Give me a moment. Let me open the door for you."
  
'''Jackter:''' "Because of the tyrant Bakal."
+
'''Book:''' ''"The rich mahogany door opens quietly. A girl, whose height barely reaches the waist of the towering general, appears behind the door and nervously looks up at the general."''
  
'''Anje Wane:''' "That's right. We suffered under its tyranny for so long that we decided we would never want to follow one person's lead, and you've just proposed that we should go back to what we've been working so hard to get rid of. And are you sure Lady Erje can handle such responsibility?"
+
'''Erje:''' "Hello, General. Are you not busy with your shooting training today?"
  
'''Jackter:''' "She's young, but she's smart and kindhearted. With proper guidance, she'll make a great leader. And what do you mean, if she can handle such responsibility? She was going to be the Archpriest, anyway. She already carries great responsibility. You almost sounded blasphemous."
+
'''Jackter:''' "I've done it for so long that my fingers are stiff. They need a break sometimes."
  
'''Anje Wane:''' "I-I didn't mean that. But the Archpriest and the empress are two different things. We abolished the emperor's power because it did more harm than good. Why should we take it back?"
+
'''Book:''' ''"Erje looks surprised."''
  
'''Book:''' ''"The leaders of nobility in the meeting room are stunned for the moment, but they didn't earn their leader positions by being stupid. They counter Jackter in the sharpest and most meticulous way. Some even manage to twist Jackter's intention without making it obvious. Jackter thought he'd covered all the basics before he entered this meeting, but there was only so much he could prepare against the barrage of questions. Jackter is about to run out of answers, when Jurgen, who has kept quiet until that moment, speaks quietly."''
+
'''Erje:''' "Huh? Your fingers are stiff? How long do you shoot your gun for your fingers to get stiff?"
  
'''Nevillo:''' "I understand what you mean, Elrox, and that you won't bend. But this matter needs to be further discussed among the members of the Council of Nobility. Give us some time."
+
'''Jackter:''' "Hah hah, longer than I care to remember."
  
'''Jactor:''' "Okay."
+
'''Erje:''' "All right."
  
'''Nevillo:''' "Then this concludes today's meeting. Councilmen, I'll contact you with the meeting date to discuss the General's proposal."
+
'''Jackter:''' "I came to see how you've been since Beldron's passing. Are you all right?"
  
'''Petra Noiman:''' "Okay."
+
'''Erje:''' "...I want to go home."
  
'''Book:''' ''"After the other noblemen leave, Jurgen sighs and stretches his neck."''
+
'''Book:''' ''"She sounds small and resigned, like a saddened child she is. She hesitates, then adds."''
  
'''Nevillo:''' "Sigh. You were more aggressive than I thought. A little circumlocution would've been nice."
+
'''Erje:''' "This place is scary."
  
'''Jackter:''' "I know I'm not a good speaker, but I didn't want to beat around the bush."
+
'''Jackter:''' "I often want to go home myself."
  
'''Nevillo:''' "General, you've shocked the entire Council of Nobility with your proposal."
+
'''Erje:''' "Mister? I mean, General. Where's your home?"
  
'''Jackter:''' "But it's only the title. The Archpriest governs the empire, anyway. What does it matter if we call her priestess or empress?"
+
'''Jackter:''' "In Wespeace. I haven't been home for a while."
  
'''Nevillo:''' "There's a huge difference, at least to politicians, and your proposition shakes the entire political groundwork. And don't insult my intelligence. It's not only the title that changes."
+
'''Erje:''' "Why?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Without a word, Jackter stares at Jurgen. Nevillo Jurgen is a man who has seized the Council of Nobility at a young age. Since the Archpriest is a nominal leader, Jurgen is the actual power of this country. Jackter can't figure out what this man wants. The intention of his proposition is clear and controversial. He thought Jurgen would object against the proposal more vehemently, and he was wrong. But he doesn't think the leader of High Society is agreeing with him on the monarchy. Jackter hates being involved in politics, but he has no choice. Even if it isn't for Beldron's will, this country, or there will be another Kartel, another invasion. He has to win this battle, and he needs to know which side Jurgen is on."''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter debates if he should tell the truth to a little girl, then decides to be honest like he always is."''
  
'''Nevillo:''' "You should've told me what you were going to do. Things would've been easier."
+
'''Jackter:''' "I wanted to bring my wife and daughter to the Imperial City, but they didn't want to leave. I regret leaving them."
  
'''Jackter:''' "Does that mean you're with me?"
+
'''Erje:''' "Mm. You're the commander-in-chief. Can't you send your soldiers to fetch your family?"
  
'''Nevillo:''' "Your proposal is based on Beldron's will isn't it?"
+
'''Jackter:''' "That's a good idea, but the war just ended and I can't mobilize soldiers for personal reasons. They're exhausted from the fighting. They need to go home and rest."
  
'''Jackter:''' "...Yes. How did you know?"
+
'''Erje:''' "Good for them. I want to go home, too."
  
'''Nevillo:''' "I figured when Beldron decided to give Lady Erje the name Vega. Vega is the name of the greatest emperor in our history who brought prosperity to his country. Not many people know about her, though, these days. I didn't know when, but I knew you'd step in. I didn't think you'd choose the hard way."
+
'''Jackter:''' "Lady Erje, how long have you been in this place? Six months? You must miss your family."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter accepts Jurgen's criticism without protest."''
+
'''Erje:''' "I do. But you're not going to send me back home, are you? Mom said I have to stay here."
  
'''Nevillo:''' "Could you leave this to me? I'll see that Beldron's wish is honored."
+
'''Jackter:''' "She's right."
  
'''Jackter:''' "(Nevillo Jurgen... What is he up to? He knows Beldron wanted a monarchy because he hated the Council of Nobility having its way with the government. But I don't know much about politics, and Erje is too young and doesn't have a big enough following to turn this man into her enemy. Geez, I'd choose fighting in the battlefield over dealing with intrigues of the Court any day of the week.) I can't ask for a better ally, but there can be no mistakes."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter doesn't try to gloss over the facts. He knows she already knows the truth."''
  
'''Nevillo:''' "Of course. Are you still busy these days? I'd like to have you over for a drink. How about tonight?"
+
'''Erje:''' "I knew it beforehand, that I'd come here. I don't know how, but I knew that I'd be sitting in a big room, alone."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter really doesn't want to visit a nobleman's house, but he has no choice."''
+
'''Jackter:''' "You won't be alone. We're here with you."
  
'''Jackter:''' "I don't have a good enough excuse to decline your offer. I've got some good liquor. I'll bring it with me."
+
'''Erje:''' "Yes..."
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=The Wind Blowing upon Empyrean: Chapter 4
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''General Populace:''' "Long live the princess! Long live the princess! Bring us prosperity!"
 
  
'''Erje:''' "Oh..."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Erje just answers halfheartedly. She's tired of insincere consolation. Jackter continues."''
  
'''Nevillo:''' "Just smile and wave your hand. You'll speak someplace else."
+
'''Jackter:''' "But we can't make things less hard than they are for you. Sadness and loneliness are a given. For now, you can cry when you're sad, and laugh when you're happy."
  
'''Erje:''' "Ye-yes..."
+
'''Erje:''' "For now?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Her coronation has reached its peak. Young Erje's face is as pale as a ghost, her body as stiff as a corpse, but she acts as she practiced, and the one-of-a-kind ceremony that combines the inauguration of Archpriest and the coronation of Imperial Princess continues to go smoothly."''
+
'''Jackter:''' "Later you might have to cry when you're happy and laugh when sad. Being a leader is a lonely job. You'll have to hide your feelings, or others will walk all over you."
  
'''Meryl:''' "Things are looking good. I thought a lot of people wouldn't be happy that a little girl was appointed after Beldron. Did you plant some attention diverters among in the crowds?"
+
'''Erje:''' "I don't want to be a leader."
  
'''Jackter:''' "No, we didn't."
+
'''Jackter:''' "Neither do I, but I don't have the power to change this reality."
  
'''Meryl:''' "You didn't, but maybe Jurgen did. Open ceremonies like this are all about creating the atmosphere. A little girl for the Archpriest and imperial princess. That's a recipe for disaster. But condition the general populace before an idea is formed in their heads, and things will go as you planned."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter pauses and debates if he should continue. It's risky to do so, but Jackter decides to bet on Erje's intelligence and Beldron's decision in designating her as his successor."''
  
'''Jackter:''' "Not everyone is so stupid to let other people think for himself."
+
'''Jackter:''' "The Archpriest is an unstable position. It's supposed to be the center of this empire, but it doesn't come with the authority expected for such an important position. The Archpriest is always questioned and has to assume responsibility that no one else wants. But that's a burden you'll have to shoulder."
  
'''Meryl:''' "Do you really think everyone in that crowd is really happy about her coronation? That's a load of crap. Only overly optimistic fools believe that. And you're not one of them, or are you? You've been working for the nobility so long that you can't think for yourself anymore. Is that it?"
+
'''Erje:''' "..."
  
'''Book:''' ''"[[Meryl Pioneer]] of the Seven Shards and Jackter have known each other since Jackter was in Wespeace. When they first met, Meryl demanded Jackter help with her research, and her attitude toward him hasn't changed, even after he was appointed commander-in-chief. Jackter is so used to her that her rudeness doesn't seem to bother him anymore."''
+
'''Jackter:''' "People will call you a puppet, a tool. You need to learn to ignore them. Don't become an Archpriest whom they can manipulate easily. Be the empress."
  
'''Jackter:''' "I'm not going to listen to some self-styled adventurer who causes trouble wherever she goes. If you really want to meddle, then why don't you join my army? I can use a good professional like you."
+
'''Erje:''' "The empress?"
  
'''Meryl:''' "Are you insane? Scientists and armies don't mix. You soldiers are impatient consequentialists with a tendency to nag. You don't understand it takes countless attempts of trial and error to yield great results."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Erje blinks her eyes in confusion. She's never heard of the word empress before. Jackter nods to emphasize what he's about to say."''
  
'''Jackter:''' "I've heard you have a student now."
+
'''Jackter:''' "This country has the structure of a sand castle. There are too many noblemen. All the power is diffused. Empyrean will collapse if another formidable enemy like Bakal appears. And your family and friends will die. You must unite this country and keep it solid. I'll help you."
  
'''Meryl:''' "Naen? She's not my student anymore. I've taken care of her for long enough. She's on her own now."
+
'''Erje:''' "Um... I don't know. Why can't you be the emperor?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Meryl thumbs ground tobacco leaves into her pipe. The chief lady-in-waiting scowls at her, displeased, but Meryl points where they are is hidden form the outside, as she takes a puff."''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Scared Erje is all but whimpering. Jackter shakes his head."''
  
'''Meryl:''' "Oh, right. I've heard Herman's student is in the Coast Guards and he's hell-bent on revenge. How long are you going to keep him? He's bad news. He looks nice and easygoing, but he's burning with bloodlust on the inside."
+
'''Jackter:''' "I can't. I've been a soldier for so long that I can only see black and white. And if I rise to the throne... Well, maybe I have the power to do so, but that'll leave a bad example: people will think anybody can overthrow the government if he has the power. And there's a more important reason."
  
'''Jackter:''' "He's made many great contributions to the army. I don't have a good replacement, or proof of your claim. I'll keep an eye on him, though."
+
'''Erje:''' "Yes?"
  
'''Meryl:''' "I don't like him. I can't believe Herman accepted him from the beginning. Tsk, tsk. At least I'm not the one who has to deal with that troublemaker. I don't have time anymore to talk to a guy wearing medals all over his chest. I've got to go now."
+
'''Jackter:''' "I hate being tied down by the rules. When I'm off for the day, I want to go to see the ocean and talk to my friends over a drink. Emperors can't do that."
  
'''Jackter:''' "But the coronation ceremony..."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter sounds as if playing is more important than anything else. Erje giggles."''
  
'''Meryl:''' "I don't care. I don't like being stuck in the crowd and I can't stand the sight of that poor girl dragging around heavy clothes that don't fit her. How many years are you going to be away this time? Wherever you are, try not to die."
+
'''Erje:''' "But I like to play, too."
  
'''Jackter:''' "You'll die before me, hag."
+
'''Jackter:''' "If you want, you can find your replacement and run. Do you want to do that?"
  
'''Book:''' "Meryl guffaws at Jackter's snarky answer."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Erje tilts her head and thinks. She sticks her tongue out, then smiles."''
  
'''Meryl:''' "Hah hah hah! Being older doesn't mean I'm closer to death, and you stand here breathing only because of your young soldiers."
+
'''Erje:''' "Then someone else has to sit in this room, alone. No, I don't want that. And Mister? Oops, I mean, General. You're the strongest man in this country, right?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Meryl disappears into the crowd, leaving long trails of cigarette smoke. The woman is eccentric, but she is smart and has a wide network of friends. She would be a great guardian for Erje, but she didn't want it. Jackter asked many times. Watching her leave, Jackter wishes athlete's foot upon her, just out of spite.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "Yes. I happen to be that person."
  
''Jurgen fills in for Meryl."''
+
'''Erje:''' "I'll do that if you help me. If this country is in danger, then so are the people I love. I'll make sure there will be no bullies. By the way, is the empress friends with the Archpriest?"
  
'''Nevillo:''' "People are responding to her more positively than I thought. She'll be able to rise to the throne without opposition."
+
'''Jackter:''' "It's a title that once existed a long time ago. The Archpriest connects God with us people, and the empress unites and leads us. Empyrean is also called an empire because it was ruled by emperors and empresses a long time ago."
  
'''Jackter:''' "This wouldn't be possible if it weren't for you, Sir Jurgen."
+
'''Erje:''' "The empress sounds scary. Isn't there a title below empress?"
  
'''Nevillo:''' "Not at all. All I did was let the general populace know that you're backing the Imperial Princess. I didn't know you were so popular."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Erje sounds serious. Jackter is at a loss: what's a title below empress? He is also an Empyrean who has never served under an emperor."''
  
'''Jackter:''' "Please, you're embarrassing me."
+
'''Jackter:''' "Um, maybe imperial princess?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter stops Jurgen before he goes on. Jackter's mind is in turmoil. Other than waving his hand at Erje whenever she turns to look at him, he keeps to himself, thinking."''
+
'''Erje:''' "Then I want to be called Imperial Princess."
  
'''Jackter:''' "(As Beldron said, the Council of Nobility needs to be reformed. A new era should begin with new people. The invasion of the Kartel was a result of deep-rooted caste discrimination and power dispersion. It's time we break the ceiling and grow taller. Make everyone under the Imperial Princess enjoy equal opportunities. Beldron, you left me with a difficult task.)"
+
'''Jackter:''' "But imperial princesses are the daughters of empresses and emperors... Well, you can become the empress when you grow up. We haven't had an empress for a long time. No one will care what you're called before you become an adult."
  
'''Nevillo:''' "(The general populace has lost trust in the nobility. If we can't change the concentration of power in the Archpriest, then we have to make the best of it. Not all the Kartels are apprehended, and the remnants will continue to trouble us. I'll keep the army on my side for a while, but I'll let the Imperial Princess take all the responsibilities. Now that she's the Archpriest and the Imperial Princess, she can be held accountable for almost everything. I'll wipe out the ridiculous priest administration system along with the Imperial Princess, and crown a new leader who is powerful and have a legitimate bloodline. It's the only way this country can survive.) What a beautiful day today, huh? It's a perfect day for a new king to rise."
+
'''Book:''' ''"It suddenly hits Jackter that Beldron would've been laughing at their conversation if he was here. He determinedly shakes off the sadness and stands up from his seat."''
  
'''Jackter:''' "Indeed."
+
'''Jackter:''' "I'm glad we've agreed to do this together. I should go now."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Jurgen and Jacktor look up to the sky."''
+
'''Erje:''' "Are you going to skip work again?"
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
|}
 
  
===Hidden Bomb: The Cyphers===
+
'''Jackter:''' "I'd love to, but there's no one else who can do my work. If you find someone who can, then let me know."
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|[[File:Hidden Bomb- The Cyphers Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Hidden Bomb: The Cyphers
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Book:''' "''There have been many changes to the world in the last 10 years. Mountains collapsed. A subterranean city has surfaced to the ground. Hendon Myre , the one-time heart of Arad, was leveled to the ground. There have been countless casualties and fatalities, and the numbers continues to grow because of frenzied monsters. Apocalyptic beliefs are more popular than ever. We're living in a dangerous time, and I'm proud we haven't given up on living. One day, we'll be able to tell future generations that we've survived one of the toughest times in history. I applaud all of you, goodhearted, resilient people of Arad, and I'm writing this to warn you of a hidden danger.''
 
  
''Have you heard about the Cyphers? Probably not many of you have, and even those who have often confuse them with magic-users. The Cyphers have survived from persecution for this long because they stay away from big, crowd cities and they're remarkably cunning. By now, you'd be wondering who these Cyphers I'm talking about are. Well, I'm about to reveal to you a big secret, so open your eyes wide and read carefully.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter raises his hand in salute and Erje imitates him in response. Jackter is about to open the door, when Erje scurries to him and pulls at his jacket hem. Jackter kneels and Erje whispers to his ear."''
  
''In plain speak, the Cyphers are magic-users of some sort. They're capable of an extraordinary power similar to that of magicians. But while magicians are a select group of admirable men from respectable families who have undergone painstaking training to master their craft, the Cyphers are born with their power.''
+
'''Erje:''' "If I become the imperial princess, I can fetch your daughter. Then can I be friends with her?"
  
''That is the biggest difference between magicians and the Cyphers and the most dangerous element about them. The Cyphers are mutants, born randomly and unexpectedly, and they grow up without proper guidance. They have a power that can change the world, but they lack the discipline to control it, which makes them as dangerous as ticking bombs. Magicians are made through training courses that take years to finish. They learn to understand their limits and the dangers that come with magic. They're restricted by the traditions and regulations of their society. When they cause harm to innocent people, they are punished by the Mage's Guild. In other words, magic is powerful, but it's controlled.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "My daughter is older than you. You can play with her, but she'll probably act like your older sister."
  
''The Cyphers are different. Only they know what they can do and how powerful they are. And they have never been researched, meaning there is no legal device to judge crimes committed at their hands. It's proved difficult to discern the damage that they have done to this Arad from that done by other strange phenomenons.''
+
'''Erje:''' "Whoa, I'd love that! I've always wanted an older sister. She can be one, can't she?
 +
 
 +
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter snorts at Erje's seemingly innocent request."''
  
''There are several instances in the past in which Cyphers used their anonymity to their advantage. I've discovered a few past accidents that I believe to have been caused by Cyphers, and I suspect much more damage has been done by the Cyphers as a whole. But those aren't the only terrifying facts about Cyphers. Because most of them live among themselves and their presence cannot be detected by magic, it's next to impossible to assess their number and behavior.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "No. I know what you're trying to do. If my daughter becomes a sister of the imperial princess, that'll make me the emperor. No way. I'm already tired of pushing paper all day."
  
''Your neighbor could be a Cypher--how terrifying is that? The power that they have is a curse that encroaches on their minds. This theory is proved through various cases: in every incident, the Cypher caused mass destruction in a fit of mindless rage. Look around--do you see anyone who looks like a criminal, whose eyes gleam dangerously in a search for the next victim? Don't you know anyone who seems to bring trouble with him everywhere he goes? Who always seems to be in the center of unexplainable situations?''
+
'''Erje:''' "Beh, you're boring."
  
''Stay vigilant for the Cyphers. If you're sure you've found a Cypher, report to the authorities. Urge your local community to keep an eye out for hidden Cyphers. We should not rest until we find and eliminate the cause of these mutants.''"
+
'''Jackter:''' "All grownups are. Now, don't go out too often. It's cold outside. I can't have you sniffle at your coronation."
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
|}
 
 
===Children of Chain Peace===
 
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|[[File:Children of Chain Peace Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Children of Chain Peace: Chapter 1
+
|Title=The Wind Blowing upon Empyrean: Chapter 3
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''Book:''' ''Maywin is sitting on her hospital bed, reading a book. She looks up from the book as someone knocks on the door. Reflexively, she tries to get off the bed and open the door, but then realizes she can’t move her legs. She yells for the visitor to come in. Maywin has no family. The only visitors she has are the members of her unit, and all of them visited her already. The visitor enters the room after a moment’s hesitation. Maywin quickly salutes.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "...So I propose that we crown Lady Erje as imperial princess."
  
''Colonel Woon Lyonir is standing in front of her, his face grim. Woon puts down a gift next to her bed as he asks after her in a subdued voice.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"The meeting is to decide Erje's succession of the Archpriest. Since there is no replacement for her, the meeting is just a formality. It should have been a quiet, solemn gathering, but Commander-in-chief Jackter's almost ridiculous proposal has caused an uproar in the meeting room."''
  
'''Woon:''' "How are you feeling?"
+
'''Petra Noiman:''' "Imperial princess? Imperial princess..."
  
'''Maywin:''' "You don’t have to worry about me. The doctor said I should be able to walk with some physical therapy."
+
'''Book:''' ''"The attending noblemen were so stunned that they're unable to speak, but Jackter remains nonchalant, almost shamelessly so. The noblemen explode with anger. Schultz angrily asks Jackter if he's insane, and then cowers quickly at Jackter's intimidating glare that has given him the nickname, Eagle Eye."''
  
'''Woon:''' "I see."
+
'''Theresa Schultz:''' "*Ahem* I don't doubt you've thought this through, but it's unheard of."
  
'''Maywin:''' "Thank you for coming to see me. I know you’re busy."
+
'''Jackter:''' "What's unheard of is the Kartel's all-out attack. At least, since the tyrant Bakal ordered to burn all history books, it was the first biggest incident in history."
  
'''Woon:''' "No, I’m…"
+
'''Petra Noiman:''' "Making her imperial princess means she could become empress in the future. General Elrox, don't you know why this country abolished the title?"
  
'''Book:''' ''The young colonel who is usually confident doesn’t seem to know what to say in a situation like this. Maywin sighs knowingly.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "Because of the tyrant Bakal."
  
'''Maywin:''' "Gosh, you’re a colonel. Can’t you think of something to say? Do I really have to ask you to talk to me like you would outside work?"
+
'''Anje Wane:''' "That's right. We suffered under its tyranny for so long that we decided we would never want to follow one person's lead, and you've just proposed that we should go back to what we've been working so hard to get rid of. And are you sure Lady Erje can handle such responsibility?"
  
'''Woon:''' "…Sorry."
+
'''Jackter:''' "She's young, but she's smart and kindhearted. With proper guidance, she'll make a great leader. And what do you mean, if she can handle such responsibility? She was going to be the Archpriest, anyway. She already carries great responsibility. You almost sounded blasphemous."
  
'''Maywin:''' "Take that chair out and sit. I hope you aren’t as nervous as you are with other soldiers you visit. You look like you’re uncomfortable breathing even."
+
'''Anje Wane:''' "I-I didn't mean that. But the Archpriest and the empress are two different things. We abolished the emperor's power because it did more harm than good. Why should we take it back?"
  
'''Woon:''' "…This doesn’t just happen when I visit someone in the hospital."
+
'''Book:''' ''"The leaders of nobility in the meeting room are stunned for the moment, but they didn't earn their leader positions by being stupid. They counter Jackter in the sharpest and most meticulous way. Some even manage to twist Jackter's intention without making it obvious. Jackter thought he'd covered all the basics before he entered this meeting, but there was only so much he could prepare against the barrage of questions. Jackter is about to run out of answers, when Jurgen, who has kept quiet until that moment, speaks quietly."''
  
'''Maywin:''' "Commander Eagle Eye makes you unable to breath in different ways, I see. How is he doing?"
+
'''Nevillo:''' "I understand what you mean, Elrox, and that you won't bend. But this matter needs to be further discussed among the members of the Council of Nobility. Give us some time."
  
'''Book:''' ''They talk about trivial things. Most times, Maywin asks and Woon answers. This quiet young man was no longer the mischievous little boy she remembers. She smiles ruefully.''
+
'''Jactor:''' "Okay."
  
'''Maywin:''' "You’re a soldier through and through. Don’t you smile any more? You like like you’re wearing a mask."
+
'''Nevillo:''' "Then this concludes today's meeting. Councilmen, I'll contact you with the meeting date to discuss the General's proposal."
  
'''Woon:''' "I’m sorry."
+
'''Petra Noiman:''' "Okay."
  
'''Maywin:''' "Sigh… How long are you going to stay in the army? Are you still looking for Rebecca?"
+
'''Book:''' ''"After the other noblemen leave, Jurgen sighs and stretches his neck."''
  
'''Woon:''' ""
+
'''Nevillo:''' "Sigh. You were more aggressive than I thought. A little circumlocution would've been nice."
  
'''Maywin:''' "You need to give up. It’s been over ten years. Even if she escaped from the site, she couldn’t have survived in the desert by herself. She could’ve been captured by the Kartel, or…"
+
'''Jackter:''' "I know I'm not a good speaker, but I didn't want to beat around the bush."
  
'''Woon:''' "She’s alive. She was the one who dragged me out of that collapsing cave."
+
'''Nevillo:''' "General, you've shocked the entire Council of Nobility with your proposal."
  
'''Maywin:''' "Then where is she now? Where did she go after she saved you? If she’s alive why hasn’t she shown up? Let’s say she’s alive. I wish she was alive. She was the leader of Chain Peace and my friend. But Woon, you used to be scared of soldier uniforms. When you said you hated soldiers, I knew you were scared of them. You’re not in the army because you like it there. You don’t have to sacrifice yourself to find her."
+
'''Jackter:''' "But it's only the title. The Archpriest governs the empire, anyway. What does it matter if we call her priestess or empress?"
  
'''Woon:''' "I know I may be wasting my time, but I promised Rebecca that I would help her find her father."
+
'''Nevillo:''' "There's a huge difference, at least to politicians, and your proposition shakes the entire political groundwork. And don't insult my intelligence. It's not only the title that changes."
  
'''Book:''' ''Maywin is struck dumb. Suddenly the ten-year-old scars start throbbing.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Without a word, Jackter stares at Jurgen. Nevillo Jurgen is a man who has seized the Council of Nobility at a young age. Since the Archpriest is a nominal leader, Jurgen is the actual power of this country. Jackter can't figure out what this man wants. The intention of his proposition is clear and controversial. He thought Jurgen would object against the proposal more vehemently, and he was wrong. But he doesn't think the leader of High Society is agreeing with him on the monarchy. Jackter hates being involved in politics, but he has no choice. Even if it isn't for Beldron's will, this country, or there will be another Kartel, another invasion. He has to win this battle, and he needs to know which side Jurgen is on."''
  
'''Maywin:''' "All right, if you really want to help her find her father, then knock yourself out. But we shouldn’t see each other anymore. Before Rebecca returns… No, even if she does, it wouldn’t do us any good to see each other. At least that’s what I think."
+
'''Nevillo:''' "You should've told me what you were going to do. Things would've been easier."
  
'''Woon:''' ""
+
'''Jackter:''' "Does that mean you're with me?"
  
'''Book:''' ''Woon doesn’t respond. Maywin is annoyed by his impassivity. If her legs were still working, she could’ve gotten off the bed and slapped him senseless. She wonders if screaming would make her feel better, then thinks better of it. Nothing she does can change the nightmare that is called reality.''
+
'''Nevillo:''' "Your proposal is based on Beldron's will isn't it?"
  
''Ten years  ago, she was so young and naïve that she thought that she could get rid of the Kartel. She was wrong. Every failure is painful, but that failure hit her the hardest. All she wanted to do was cry, but her country was already at war.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "...Yes. How did you know?"
  
''When the enemy abducted the Imperial Princess, Empyrean sent child soldiers, even the wounded ones, back t the battlefield. There were not enough grownups, even children had to fight. No one complained. Villages were wiped out of existence on a daily basis.''
+
'''Nevillo:''' "I figured when Beldron decided to give Lady Erje the name Vega. Vega is the name of the greatest emperor in our history who brought prosperity to his country. Not many people know about her, though, these days. I didn't know when, but I knew you'd step in. I didn't think you'd choose the hard way."
  
''After a long time, the war ended and people lost their friends and families. She couldn’t change any of that, even if she wanted to, and the old pain that she tried hard to ignore has come back with vengeance.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter accepts Jurgen's criticism without protest."''
  
''She knows she is taking her anger and guilt out on Woon. Instead of encouraging him to forget the nightmare, she’s yelling at the youngest of them all because he’s changed.''
+
'''Nevillo:''' "Could you leave this to me? I'll see that Beldron's wish is honored."
  
'''Maywin:''' "…You’d better leave. Leave. Will you leave if I salute?"
+
'''Jackter:''' "(Nevillo Jurgen... What is he up to? He knows Beldron wanted a monarchy because he hated the Council of Nobility having its way with the government. But I don't know much about politics, and Erje is too young and doesn't have a big enough following to turn this man into her enemy. Geez, I'd choose fighting in the battlefield over dealing with intrigues of the Court any day of the week.) I can't ask for a better ally, but there can be no mistakes."
  
'''Woon:''' "I’ll go. Take care, and… I’m sorry."
+
'''Nevillo:''' "Of course. Are you still busy these days? I'd like to have you over for a drink. How about tonight?"
  
'''Book:''' ''Woon leaves her room. Maywin nonchalantly pats her comforter smooth and holds her book back up. The tragic story of the main character is about to reach its climax. Starting from tomorrow, she’ll have to prepare for her retirement. She’s determined to forget about Woon and enjoy the rest of her day.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter really doesn't want to visit a nobleman's house, but he has no choice."''
  
'''Maywin:''' "…"
+
'''Jackter:''' "I don't have a good enough excuse to decline your offer. I've got some good liquor. I'll bring it with me."
 
 
'''Book:''' ''Maywin drops her book. After she was injured, she finally has the time to read this tragedy novel, and it’s boring.''
 
 
 
''Nothing is more tragic than reality.''
 
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Children of Chain Peace: Chapter 2
+
|Title=The Wind Blowing upon Empyrean: Chapter 4
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''Book:''' ''Rebecca was young. Her [[Jakter|father]] was a great man, but he didn't know what to do with his daughter whom he had later in his life. He could've been a good adviser if she was older. But she was too young to understand her father's situation. She was angry with him for staying away from home all the time.''
+
'''General Populace:''' "Long live the princess! Long live the princess! Bring us prosperity!"
  
''Father was recognized at his work and transferred to the Imperial Capital. He wanted to take Mother and Rebecca with him, but Mother was born and lived in the desert all her life. She didn't want to go. She said she'd rather deal with the Kartel than with society's deep-rooted hatred toward the residents of the desert. Father left alone, and Mother acted as if he was dead. Their neighbors laughed about Father's stupidity to move to the Imperial Capital. Father disappeared from her life, but that didn't affect Rebecca. She stood her ground against the older boy Jay over being the leader of their gang.''
+
'''Erje:''' "Oh..."
  
''Jay gave her many noogies, annoyed by the stubborn girl, but Rebecca, even as she cried and sniffled, didn't budge until he surrendered. Father kept in touch with Mother and Rebecca. He sent thick, technical books. Mother sold them for food and weapons. Mother believed in the safety of weapons. Rebecca was always on her mother's side, but sometimes she stole one of the books Father sent to read it. Mother pretended she didn't know. Their life changed when the war broke out.''
+
'''Nevillo:''' "Just smile and wave your hand. You'll speak someplace else."
  
''The Kartel, having been acting suspiciously for a few years, crossed the sea and attacked the Imperial Capital. The villagers hated the Kartel, but they hated the Imperial Capital just as much. Some of the grownups said the Kartels were a proud rebellion army. Their hatred toward their country ran deep.''
+
'''Erje:''' "Ye-yes..."
  
''There was a child of another soldier in the village. He was [[Woon]]. His father beat him, and the kids in the neighborhood made fun of him for being covered in bruises all the time. Rebecca always defended Woon, and he followed Rebecca as a puppy would its owner. They were like an older sister and her brother.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Her coronation has reached its peak. Young Erje's face is as pale as a ghost, her body as stiff as a corpse, but she acts as she practiced, and the one-of-a-kind ceremony that combines the inauguration of Archpriest and the coronation of Imperial Princess continues to go smoothly."''
  
''As the war dragged on, the Kartel's abuse on the people of the desert worsened. Rebecca's mother was the leader of the village militia, and one day was gravely injured while trying to protect the village against the Kartels. Before she died, she saw her husband's image in the misty eyes of her daughter. Since that day, Rebecca was no longer a little girl. She didn't know where her father was or cared to find him. She found the weapons that her mother hid and planned her future.''
+
'''Meryl:''' "Things are looking good. I thought a lot of people wouldn't be happy that a little girl was appointed after Beldron. Did you plant some attention diverters among in the crowds?"
  
''She came up with the name, Chain Peace. Jay laughed at her when she explained the name meant small rings of peace linked to form a greater peace. "Let's try not to break the chain before it's even created." The initial members were Rebecca, Jay, and Woon. Being as tall as a grown man, Jay naturally became their leader. Rebecca and Woon gathered information and Jay planned operations.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "No, we didn't."
  
''At first, their operation was mere child's play, but as time went by, they became very useful to the government army that was barely surviving in the Lawless District. They became famous. Teenager that had nowhere to go joined Chain Peace. [[Maywin]] was one of them. Grownups who were tired of the Kartel supplied them with weapons and food. The Wespeace Army also increased its support for Chain Peace. As their numbers grew, the army wanted them to take on more various and dangerous missions. They got hurt more often the more they accomplished. They thought they really had a chance at defeating the Kartel.''
+
'''Meryl:''' "You didn't, but maybe Jurgen did. Open ceremonies like this are all about creating the atmosphere. A little girl for the Archpriest and imperial princess. That's a recipe for disaster. But condition the general populace before an idea is formed in their heads, and things will go as you planned."
  
''They were wrong. Things weren't so easy. An [[Anton|electric-eating monster]] appeared, and again the Kartel crossed the sea. The news was that the Empyrean Royal Army was losing. Everyone in Chain Peace couldn't sleep. Around this time, Jay had changed. He and his close friends were always up to something, and one day they beat up a friend to "discipline him." Rebecca was always away on a mission, and by the time she knew what was happening, things were bad.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "Not everyone is so stupid to let other people think for himself."
  
''Two had a big fight, Jay left Chain Peace, leaving Rebecca to lead it. The kids liked having Rebecca as their leader. She was more moderate and serious about their cause. After Jay left, the Kartel's operations to catch Chain Peace became more elaborate and accurate. Several times, they almost got busted. They really hated it, but they knew they had a mole among them. They were right.''
+
'''Meryl:''' "Do you really think everyone in that crowd is really happy about her coronation? That's a load of crap. Only overly optimistic fools believe that. And you're not one of them, or are you? You've been working for the nobility so long that you can't think for yourself anymore. Is that it?"
  
''Feeling threatened, the members of Chain Peace insisted that the traitor be killed. After much consideration, Rebecca decided to move their headquarters to a remote place. During their move, they picked up a man named [[Roy]] dying in the middle of the desert. Roy was eccentric, but he was good with his hands. He created many useful things out of junk, and his inventions saved Chain Peace more than a few times. Roy stayed with them for several months, and soon after he left, they heard the news of the Imperial Princess's abduction.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"[[Meryl Pioneer]] of the Seven Shards and Jackter have known each other since Jackter was in Wespeace. When they first met, Meryl demanded Jackter help with her research, and her attitude toward him hasn't changed, even after he was appointed commander-in-chief. Jackter is so used to her that her rudeness doesn't seem to bother him anymore."''
  
''Many grownups who fought the Kartels with them dropped their guns and surrendered. The children of Chain Peace were disheartened and despaired. The friends that they had yesterday became enemies today. But they couldn't stop fighting. The Kartel wasn't satisfied with the abduction of the Imperial Princess, so it decided to destroy the Imperial Capital. It drafted people of all ages and genders to fill its army. Chain Peace had to fight to survive. There was no time to relax. The children of Chain Peace grew weary and fought each other over trivial things. The existence of Chain Peace was at stake.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "I'm not going to listen to some self-styled adventurer who causes trouble wherever she goes. If you really want to meddle, then why don't you join my army? I can use a good professional like you."
  
''Rebecca was still strong and confident in front of her friends, but when she was alone, she often thought about her father. She missed him, but she wasn't sure if she could meet him before she died. She didn't blame Mother for refusing to go to the Imperial Capital with Father. Rebecca tried to think her mother simply decided to go her own way, and that she was doing the same thing.''
+
'''Meryl:''' "Are you insane? Scientists and armies don't mix. You soldiers are impatient consequentialists with a tendency to nag. You don't understand it takes countless attempts of trial and error to yield great results."
  
''Rebecca was worried about her friends, most of all, Woon, who was losing his smile. Woon was like her brother, and it was hard to see him sit in the corner by himself for hours. He was too young to fight in the battlefield. She thought about sending him to a remote village, but no one was willing to take in a child. Things were hard for them as it was. The only thing she could do for Woon was give him her mother's keepsake necklace on his birthday. She wanted to cheer him up, and she also had a sense of foreboding that she couldn't seem to shake off.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "I've heard you have a student now."
  
''Bad feelings can never be wrong. Rebecca was hurrying out of the cave filled with fire and screams when she encountered Jay after a long time. A corner of her mouth lifted in a soundless snicker. At that moment, she looked just like her father, but, of course, she didn't know it.''
+
'''Meryl:''' "Naen? She's not my student anymore. I've taken care of her for long enough. She's on her own now."
  
''It was the last day that anyone in Chain Peace ever saw Rebecca.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Meryl thumbs ground tobacco leaves into her pipe. The chief lady-in-waiting scowls at her, displeased, but Meryl points where they are is hidden form the outside, as she takes a puff."''
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Children of Chain Peace: Chapter 3
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Book:''' ''Jay was an orphan. He didn't have family, but he liked singing and performing in front of an audience. He thought he'd be a singer one day. Among his friends, gunslingers were more popular than singers, but he didn't like the loud noises of guns.''  
 
  
''One time, he went to a neighboring village to watch a famous singer sing, and almost got drafted by the Kartel that thought he was a grown man because of his height. He realized survival was more important than anything else. He burned his music scores. He was twelve.''
+
'''Meryl:''' "Oh, right. I've heard Herman's student is in the Coast Guards and he's hell-bent on revenge. How long are you going to keep him? He's bad news. He looks nice and easygoing, but he's burning with bloodlust on the inside."
  
''Jay was the leader among his friends. Those who were older than Jay were busy learning how to shoot, leaving Jay to lead the younger kids. Things changed when a girl named [[Guide Rebecca|Rebecca]] decided that she wanted his place. That spunky tomboy changed the pattern of the little war that took place among the children in the neighborhood. Instead of brawling, they split into teams and played a make-believe war that was fairly impressively planned. The grownups chided at them, but they took the war seriously... although it always ended with everyone covered in mud, tears, and snot.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "He's made many great contributions to the army. I don't have a good replacement, or proof of your claim. I'll keep an eye on him, though."
  
''Jay was known as a troublemaker, but he followed a rule: be romantic. It was the rule set by the famous gunslinger, [[Sandstorm Varracht]]. Jay first thought it would make a good song, and then decided it would be his rule in life. He did things that he thought were romantic: he led his friends. He fought a drunken man who was kicking a six-year-old. He joined [[Chain Peace]] to fight the Kartel with Rebecca and others. But deep inside, he knew he was using romance as an excuse to hide his real intentions. He wanted to lead his friends because he wanted to be better than them. He joined Rebecca's Chain Peace to survive.''
+
'''Meryl:''' "I don't like him. I can't believe Herman accepted him from the beginning. Tsk, tsk. At least I'm not the one who has to deal with that troublemaker. I don't have time anymore to talk to a guy wearing medals all over his chest. I've got to go now."
  
''The Kartel dragged away children when they became old enough to work. His villagers had been able to keep the Kartel away from their village, but that wouldn't last long. After they decided to create Chain Peace, the three left the village and realized they had nowhere to go. They called themselves gunslingers, but they were just teenagers without guardians. They didn't want to join the militia of a village lest they'd become cannon fodder, but they couldn't wander the desert forever.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "But the coronation ceremony..."
  
''Jay contacted the Wespeace Army who was pushed back to the Imperial Capital and barely returned. The army was isolated in the Lawless District. The residents were afraid of the Kartel, but they refused to cooperate with the army. Jay hired innocent-looking girls and boys to collect information around villages and sold useful information to the army. The army needed local agents, so it reluctantly accepted Jay's offer. Negotiating with the grownups was tough, but Jay was doing better than he thought. He was going to save the money he got from the army and escape from the arid island.''
+
'''Meryl:''' "I don't care. I don't like being stuck in the crowd and I can't stand the sight of that poor girl dragging around heavy clothes that don't fit her. How many years are you going to be away this time? Wherever you are, try not to die."
  
''But the Wespeace Army wouldn't let go of such a great agent. Jay started keeping secrets from Rebecca. It didn't take time before the executives of the army changed their affable attitude to overt threats. Jay thought about using [[Jakter the Eagle Eye|Rebecca's father]], but he was afraid of losing her. Things could get worse. The leaders of Empyrean didn't want to spend too much money on maintaining peace in the Lawless District. They wanted to keep the Kartels desperate and low on supplies. The Wespeace Army was desperate to get more support from the government, and if they recognized who Rebecca was, they wouldn't let her go to her father. They would use a dirty scheme to sacrifice Rebecca and get what they wanted from their headquarters.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "You'll die before me, hag."
  
''While Jay was dealing with his own dilemma, Chain Peace became famous, and it was making him uncomfortable. The Wespeace Army wanted to use the children for their propaganda against the Kartel. The Wespeace Army demanded Jay that it wanted a model for their propaganda. Jay had to hide Rebecca from the army, so he sent [[Woon Lyonir|Woon]] instead. The picture of the small child carrying a gun as tall as he was featured in many newspapers with provocative titles. People on the other side of the sea were selfish, but they had a soft spot for children. Support flooded in, and the happy Wespeace Army saw that Chain Peace was put to good use.''  
+
'''Book:''' "Meryl guffaws at Jackter's snarky answer."
  
''Maybe it was because of her personality or upbringing, but Rebecca was ignorant of things that took place behind the curtains. She thought all she had to do was accomplish her missions and save people. She was a great tactician and an even greater marksman, but she wasn't a politician.''
+
'''Meryl:''' "Hah hah hah! Being older doesn't mean I'm closer to death, and you stand here breathing only because of your young soldiers."
  
''Because of the Wespeace Army's propaganda, children came from different places to join Chain Peace. The army executives urged Jay to grow Chain Peace quickly, so it could take on more important missions. The army's support for Chain Peace increased. Jay hoped he would soon have an opportunity to escape from all this.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Meryl disappears into the crowd, leaving long trails of cigarette smoke. The woman is eccentric, but she is smart and has a wide network of friends. She would be a great guardian for Erje, but she didn't want it. Jackter asked many times. Watching her leave, Jackter wishes athlete's foot upon her, just out of spite.''
  
''But things don't always go as you plan, and sometimes they go in the completely opposite direction. The news was some [[Anton|giant monster]] had appeared in Eaton and was feeding on all of Empyrean's electrical power. At first, Jay thought it was a joke. It wasn't. Support stopped coming to the Wespeace Army. Things went badly.''
+
''Jurgen fills in for Meryl."''
  
''The Kartel saw an opportunity. After exhausting every resource the Lawless District had left, which included the drying wells of mountainous villages, they marched back to the Imperial Capital. No news of the regular army's victory was heard. All news that Jay heard was about the army losing, and soon news stopped coming altogether. Jay felt like he was suffocating under the weight of his friends' expectations of him.''
+
'''Nevillo:''' "People are responding to her more positively than I thought. She'll be able to rise to the throne without opposition."
  
''Jay started moving again for his survival. He and his close friends stole from others to make their living until they were caught. The Kartel soldier who caught him was a grownup from his hometown. He barely escaped, but for a while he couldn't sleep at night. Then he got caught by Rebecca and they had a big fight. Rebecca was as stubborn as she was when they fought over the leader position among their friends. He hated her for it, but he was guilty at the same time. He didn't apologize. His pride didn't allow it, and he also thought it was too late to change things. Then he saw Woon, who became frightened as soon as their eyes are met. His heart sank. Woon was like a brother to him, and he made that kid afraid of him. He didn't want to make Rebecca and Woon sad. He fought to survive and protect.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "This wouldn't be possible if it weren't for you, Sir Jurgen."
  
''He hated the Kartel and hated cowardly grownups, but he had become one of them. He was so devastated and ashamed of himself that he had to leave Chain Peace. Those who worked as thieves with him followed him. The night he left his friends, Jay looked up the night sky and wondered. What if he stopped Rebecca from forming Chain Peace? What if he pursued his dream of becoming a singer? What if he was born somewhere other than the Lawless District?''
+
'''Nevillo:''' "Not at all. All I did was let the general populace know that you're backing the Imperial Princess. I didn't know you were so popular."
  
''All the what ifs were meaningless now. The merciless sandstorm stung his eyes and nose. He wouldn't be able to see Rebecca and Woon again. Come to think of it, those two were his family. Jay prayed for their safety and moved on.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "Please, you're embarrassing me."
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Children of Chain Peace: Chapter 4
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Book:''' ''Woon’s father was a hunter. He couldn’t remember exactly when he first learned how to approach game without alerting it, but he remembered that he learned to shoot a gun before his teens and that his father was a good hunter. The makeshift bullets that even petty thieves wouldn’t want were cheaper than a bottle of alcohol. Woon hunted small animals to support his father’s drinking habit. His mother was a soldier but she didn’t come home often.''
 
  
''He didn’t remember when Mother became a soldier, but it was probably after Father lost his left leg. When Father got drunk, he often beat Woon and kicked him out of the house, forcing him to sleep under the roof. His skin was always blue and yellow with bruises and scabs over scratches from animal claws. The village grownups weren’t unkind, but they weren’t caring either. None of them tried to stop Woon’s father from beating him.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Jackter stops Jurgen before he goes on. Jackter's mind is in turmoil. Other than waving his hand at Erje whenever she turns to look at him, he keeps to himself, thinking."''
  
''Jay, the oldest boy in the neighbourhood, defended Woon against his father, and the strong, righteous mother of Rebecca took him home and bathed and fed him. Rebecca acted as if Woon was always bothersome, but she’d always wanted a younger brother, and Woon was affable and charming. She and Woon got close quickly. Rebecca took good care of him and didn’t mind sharing her mother with him.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "(As Beldron said, the Council of Nobility needs to be reformed. A new era should begin with new people. The invasion of the Kartel was a result of deep-rooted caste discrimination and power dispersion. It's time we break the ceiling and grow taller. Make everyone under the Imperial Princess enjoy equal opportunities. Beldron, you left me with a difficult task.)"
  
''But Little Woon’s good behaviour and cheerful personality were the results of his father’s violence and his mother’s negligence. Woon was afraid of being abandoned, so he was desperate to please Rebecca and her mother, and that saddened Rebecca’s mother. The happiest days of his life ended with the death of Rebecca’s mother. Rebecca and Jay decided to fight the Kartel, and Woon insisted that he’d be included. He couldn’t imagine fighting grownups, but he was afraid of losing the two.''
+
'''Nevillo:''' "(The general populace has lost trust in the nobility. If we can't change the concentration of power in the Archpriest, then we have to make the best of it. Not all the Kartels are apprehended, and the remnants will continue to trouble us. I'll keep the army on my side for a while, but I'll let the Imperial Princess take all the responsibilities. Now that she's the Archpriest and the Imperial Princess, she can be held accountable for almost everything. I'll wipe out the ridiculous priest administration system along with the Imperial Princess, and crown a new leader who is powerful and have a legitimate bloodline. It's the only way this country can survive.) What a beautiful day today, huh? It's a perfect day for a new king to rise."
  
''On the day they left the village, Rebecca said that they should take the same family name. Jayu scoffed, but he came up with myriad family names. They bickered over the name for a while, and then decided on Lyonir. Woon became Woon Lyonir. He was happy because he felt like he’d become their real brother. He would later learn that Rebecca wanted a different family name to avoid her father.''
+
'''Jackter:''' "Indeed."
  
''Chain Peace had a good cause, but its existence was precarious. The Wespeace Army thought the children could serve as a good tool to sway public opinion. It provided Chain Peace enough support to continue its existence. It also gave jobs. Woon was an excellent marksman. He was afraid of fighting, but he soldiered on. He didn’t want to be a burden to Jay and Rebecca.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Jurgen and Jacktor look up to the sky."''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
  
''The news of the young heroes fighting the Kartels became a great issue among people on the other side of the sea. It was around this time that he earned the nickname, Little Lyonir. The more children bled, the more sympathetic the general populace became.''
+
===Hidden Bomb: The Cyphers===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:Hidden Bomb- The Cyphers Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Hidden Bomb: The Cyphers
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book:''' "''There have been many changes to the world in the last 10 years. Mountains collapsed. A subterranean city has surfaced to the ground. Hendon Myre , the one-time heart of Arad, was leveled to the ground. There have been countless casualties and fatalities, and the numbers continues to grow because of frenzied monsters. Apocalyptic beliefs are more popular than ever. We're living in a dangerous time, and I'm proud we haven't given up on living. One day, we'll be able to tell future generations that we've survived one of the toughest times in history. I applaud all of you, goodhearted, resilient people of Arad, and I'm writing this to warn you of a hidden danger.''
  
''Woon couldn’t understand. If they felt so sorry for the children of Chain Peace, they should come over and help. Instead, they watched them from the other side of the sea and wept for them. Jay brought Woon with him whenever he had a meeting with the Wespeace Army. War correspondents he met at those meetings made him bleed from his knees, so he became afraid of soldier but he hated to show it.''
+
''Have you heard about the Cyphers? Probably not many of you have, and even those who have often confuse them with magic-users. The Cyphers have survived from persecution for this long because they stay away from big, crowd cities and they're remarkably cunning. By now, you'd be wondering who these Cyphers I'm talking about are. Well, I'm about to reveal to you a big secret, so open your eyes wide and read carefully.''
  
''For a while, he tried searching for his mother by asking the soldiers. None of them knew where his mother was. Even now, Woon doesn’t know if his mother is alive or where she is.''
+
''In plain speak, the Cyphers are magic-users of some sort. They're capable of an extraordinary power similar to that of magicians. But while magicians are a select group of admirable men from respectable families who have undergone painstaking training to master their craft, the Cyphers are born with their power.''  
  
''Woon was the youngest among the members of Chain Peace. Age was a deciding factor of the ranks among the members, so Jay and Rebecca forbade Woon from calling them Brother and Sister. They also made him present in every strategy meeting. Some members objected at first, but they shut up. Woon was one of the most talented marksmen in Chain Peace.''
+
''That is the biggest difference between magicians and the Cyphers and the most dangerous element about them. The Cyphers are mutants, born randomly and unexpectedly, and they grow up without proper guidance. They have a power that can change the world, but they lack the discipline to control it, which makes them as dangerous as ticking bombs. Magicians are made through training courses that take years to finish. They learn to understand their limits and the dangers that come with magic. They're restricted by the traditions and regulations of their society. When they cause harm to innocent people, they are punished by the Mage's Guild. In other words, magic is powerful, but it's controlled.''
  
''After their leader Jay left Chain Peace, Rebecca became the leader. Then reality started pressuring Chain Peace. A monster named Anton appeared and the Kartel abducted the Imperial Princess. Some good things happened, but things were mostly tough. The kartel continued to close in on Chain Peace. Its members ran and reappeared as its enemies or corpses. The children of Chain Peace were their losing reasons to live. The only thing that kept them from going was their leader Rebecca. She took care of all the dirty work and stayed up all night strategizing to find food and fight the Kartels. Rebecca was a born hero.''
+
''The Cyphers are different. Only they know what they can do and how powerful they are. And they have never been researched, meaning there is no legal device to judge crimes committed at their hands. It's proved difficult to discern the damage that they have done to this Arad from that done by other strange phenomenons.''
  
''Countless times, Woon thought the war would’ve ended more easily if that incident didn’t happen or if he saved Rebecca that day. But he couldn’t, and Rebecca was still missing to this day. He tried to remember something that could help him find Rebecca, but he couldn’t put together the fragments of his memory of that day.''
+
''There are several instances in the past in which Cyphers used their anonymity to their advantage. I've discovered a few past accidents that I believe to have been caused by Cyphers, and I suspect much more damage has been done by the Cyphers as a whole. But those aren't the only terrifying facts about Cyphers. Because most of them live among themselves and their presence cannot be detected by magic, it's next to impossible to assess their number and behavior.''
  
''Red sky. Shouts and explosions. Faces of dying friends. He was bloody, and Rebecca carried him on her back. Those were the things he could remember. He didn’t know who betrayed them or who threw the bomb. Actually none of them mattered now. He lost anger, sadness, and happiness that day. Woon thought he died that day. He hated that his body was still breathing. He pointed his gun at himself more than a few times, but didn’t pull the trigger because of what Rebecca said.''
+
''Your neighbor could be a Cypher--how terrifying is that? The power that they have is a curse that encroaches on their minds. This theory is proved through various cases: in every incident, the Cypher caused mass destruction in a fit of mindless rage. Look around--do you see anyone who looks like a criminal, whose eyes gleam dangerously in a search for the next victim? Don't you know anyone who seems to bring trouble with him everywhere he goes? Who always seems to be in the center of unexplainable situations?''
  
''She once gave him her mother’s keepsake as his birthday gift. She patted Woon on his head and smiled sadly.''
+
''Stay vigilant for the Cyphers. If you're sure you've found a Cypher, report to the authorities. Urge your local community to keep an eye out for hidden Cyphers. We should not rest until we find and eliminate the cause of these mutants.''"
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
  
“It might be too late, but I miss my father.”
+
===Children of Chain Peace===
 
+
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
''He wanted to grant her wish. He could hardly remember what happened to Chain Peace on that day, but he could remember Rebecca’s voice like he heard it just yesterday.''
+
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
+
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
''He didn’t know if she was alive, but there was no proof of her death. He refused to let go of that little bit of hope. Woon would continue to fight until Rebecca, still the teenage girl in his mind, could be happily united with her father.''
+
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
+
|[[File:Children of Chain Peace Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Children of Chain Peace: Chapter 5
+
|Title=Children of Chain Peace: Chapter 1
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''Book:''' ''Anton was defeated and the Empyrean Royal Army was back in Ghent, but the soldiers couldn't rest. The war was over, but the safety of the Imperial Capital was still precarious. The main duty of the Empyrean Royal Army wasn't dealing with external threats, but maintaining internal peace. Empyrean was geographically isolated, and its population was small enough for a single military organization to manage up to now. Ghent had been dealing with small and big conflicts. From adventurers from Arad to thieves that became prevalent in the ravage of war, all the problems were the exhausted soldiers' to deal with.''
+
'''Book:''' ''Maywin is sitting on her hospital bed, reading a book. She looks up from the book as someone knocks on the door. Reflexively, she tries to get off the bed and open the door, but then realizes she can’t move her legs. She yells for the visitor to come in. Maywin has no family. The only visitors she has are the members of her unit, and all of them visited her already. The visitor enters the room after a moment’s hesitation. Maywin quickly salutes.''
  
''[[Jackter]] didn't know what to say to his aid who had to return before his two days of vacation even started. He wanted to force him to go back home, but for the brief moment his aid was gone, the Ghent headquarters was thrown into chaos. [[Woon]], oblivious of his boss's dilemma, reported his return and immediately got to work. Except a few of his subordinates who got grumpy over their boss's unexpected return, everyone breathed a sigh of relief: finally things could get done. Woon worked for three days straight, except when he was eating and showering, to catch up with work. When he was finally done, he staggered to the documentation center next to his office, and then laid down on the bench. He was going to take a short nap before his subordinates came to work.''  
+
''Colonel Woon Lyonir is standing in front of her, his face grim. Woon puts down a gift next to her bed as he asks after her in a subdued voice.''
  
''In the afternoon, he would accompany the general officers to the hospital. The general officers were planning to demand more hospitals from the Council of Nobility. As their escort, he would have to be on his guard every minute, watching for any possible attack on the important figures. He must have strained himself. The injury that had not yet healed throbbed. He didn't mind the pain, but the throbbing triggered the voices that he'd been hearing for the last ten years. He heard many voices in his head. Some were of fallen soldiers of his and others were from the enemies he killed. A lot of soldiers of this country experienced the same symptoms, having gone through a war that lasted for years.''
+
'''Woon:''' "How are you feeling?"
  
''Woon listened to his soldiers' complaints, but he never told anyone he had the same problem. He couldn't afford to look damaged. It would interfere with his plan. He also didn't want to disgrace his commander, and he must stay in the army to accomplish his lifetime mission. He had been trying to act normally. While leading his army, he gritted his teeth and reminded himself that the soldiers behind him were not his enemies. When he heard stories about [[Chain Peace]], he tried to breathe normally. Acting tough, but he did it with grim determination. At first, he didn't think he could pretend to be normal. But he saw the survivors of Chain Peace devolve. He didn't want to be one of them. He was almost perfect with his acting except for one thing.''
+
'''Maywin:''' "You don’t have to worry about me. The doctor said I should be able to walk with some physical therapy."
  
'''Woon:''' "...!"
+
'''Woon:''' "I see."
  
'''Lukas:''' "Wah!"
+
'''Maywin:''' "Thank you for coming to see me. I know you’re busy."
  
'''Book:''' ''Woon jolted awake. Someone was with him, and he wasn't sure if this was real or if he was dreaming. In his blurry eyes, the brawny man looked looked like a Kartel soldier one moment and then a Tartan the next.''
+
'''Woon:''' "No, I’m…"
  
'''Lukas:''' "Um... Colonel Woon? I'm Second Lieutenant Lukas. I'm sorry to disturb you. I've brought some letters for you. I was just going to leave them with you and leave..."
+
'''Book:''' ''The young colonel who is usually confident doesn’t seem to know what to say in a situation like this. Maywin sighs knowingly.''
  
'''Woon:''' "...Are you new?"
+
'''Maywin:''' "Gosh, you’re a colonel. Can’t you think of something to say? Do I really have to ask you to talk to me like you would outside work?"
 +
 
 +
'''Woon:''' "…Sorry."
 +
 
 +
'''Maywin:''' "Take that chair out and sit. I hope you aren’t as nervous as you are with other soldiers you visit. You look like you’re uncomfortable breathing even."
  
'''Book:''' ''Woon asked curtly as he loosened his grip on his gun. The magazine he removed before he took a nap dropped onto the floor below the bench.''
+
'''Woon:''' "…This doesn’t just happen when I visit someone in the hospital."
  
'''Woon:''' "I'm sorry. I'll be out in a minute. You can leave now. And call me by my family name, will you? I won't be able to recognize you by your voice."
+
'''Maywin:''' "Commander Eagle Eye makes you unable to breath in different ways, I see. How is he doing?"
  
'''Lukas:''' "Huh? Yes, sir. I'll leave the letters here for you."
+
'''Book:''' ''They talk about trivial things. Most times, Maywin asks and Woon answers. This quiet young man was no longer the mischievous little boy she remembers. She smiles ruefully.''
  
'''Book:''' ''The lower-ranking officer who was older than him hurriedly left the room. Woon breathed a long sigh. His back was wet with cold sweat. According to the clock, he slept for about three hours. He was still tired, but not as much as before he took a nap. He must have been tense since he paid [[Maywin]] at the hospital. It was understandable: one of the survivors of Chain Peace was hurt. He diagnosed his condition as if it was someone else's.''
+
'''Maywin:''' "You’re a soldier through and through. Don’t you smile any more? You like like you’re wearing a mask."
  
''Listening to the birds chirping outside the window, Woon checked the letters Second Lieutenant Lukas left for him. One of them was from Maywin. He tilted his head. Maywin was the one who didn't want to keep in touch. She must have been in a hurry when she wrote the letter. The handwriting was sloppy and the message was short. She thanked him for his visit and wrote her new address in case he wanted to see her.''
+
'''Woon:''' "I’m sorry."
  
'''Woon:''' "(Should I be grateful or sorry about this?)"
+
'''Maywin:''' "Sigh… How long are you going to stay in the army? Are you still looking for Rebecca?"
  
'''Book:''' ''Confused, Woon opened the next letter. It was a request to approve the recruitment of boy soldiers aged thirteen to sixteen to restore public order more quickly. The request was sent from the Wespeace headquarters, and must be reported to the commander-in-chief. Woon read the letter several times, and then slowly crumpled it. He was hearing the voices again.''
+
'''Woon:''' "…"
  
'''Chain Peace Child 1:''' "Woon, help me!"
+
'''Maywin:''' "You need to give up. It’s been over ten years. Even if she escaped from the site, she couldn’t have survived in the desert by herself. She could’ve been captured by the Kartel, or…"
  
'''Chain Peace Child 2:''' "Woon! Woon! My leg... It's gone... It hurts..."
+
'''Woon:''' "She’s alive. She was the one who dragged me out of that collapsing cave."
  
'''Chain Peace Child 3:''' "Woon, please help me! It hurts so bad... I don't want to die!"
+
'''Maywin:''' "Then where is she now? Where did she go after she saved you? If she’s alive why hasn’t she shown up? Let’s say she’s alive. I wish she was alive. She was the leader of Chain Peace and my friend. But Woon, you used to be scared of soldier uniforms. When you said you hated soldiers, I knew you were scared of them. You’re not in the army because you like it there. You don’t have to sacrifice yourself to find her."
  
'''Book:''' ''Woon Lyonir grabbed his head in anguish. He didn't come out of the documentation center for a long time.''
+
'''Woon:''' "I know I may be wasting my time, but I promised Rebecca that I would help her find her father."
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
|}
 
  
===Happy Magic Classroom===
+
'''Book:''' ''Maywin is struck dumb. Suddenly the ten-year-old scars start throbbing.''
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|[[File:Happy Magic Classroom Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Happy Magic Classroom
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Kiri:''' "Yoo-hoo! Good morning! Long time, no see, Sharan!"
 
  
'''Sharan:''' "Ah, yes. Good morning."
+
'''Maywin:''' "All right, if you really want to help her find her father, then knock yourself out. But we shouldn’t see each other anymore. Before Rebecca returns… No, even if she does, it wouldn’t do us any good to see each other. At least that’s what I think."
  
'''Kiri:''' "You must have been busy. I haven't seen you for a while."
+
'''Woon:''' ""
  
'''Sharan:''' "I've been busy with the school. Um, excuse me now. I have a report to write."
+
'''Book:''' ''Woon doesn’t respond. Maywin is annoyed by his impassivity. If her legs were still working, she could’ve gotten off the bed and slapped him senseless. She wonders if screaming would make her feel better, then thinks better of it. Nothing she does can change the nightmare that is called reality.''
  
'''Kiri:''' "A report? You're still busy, huh? Is there something I can do for you? I want to help. And when we're done, I'd like to learn the basics of magic. The other day, you said you would teach me."
+
''Ten years  ago, she was so young and naïve that she thought that she could get rid of the Kartel. She was wrong. Every failure is painful, but that failure hit her the hardest. All she wanted to do was cry, but her country was already at war.''
  
'''Sharan:''' "That was because you wouldn't leave me alone. Hm... All right. I'm not supposed to teach magic to anyone other than Dark Elves, but as the principal of the academy, I shouldn't ignore someone so eager to learn."
+
''When the enemy abducted the Imperial Princess, Empyrean sent child soldiers, even the wounded ones, back t the battlefield. There were not enough grownups, even children had to fight. No one complained. Villages were wiped out of existence on a daily basis.''
  
'''Kiri:''' "Really? Yippee! Then can you teach me how to summon fire pillars with a snap of my fingers?"
+
''After a long time, the war ended and people lost their friends and families. She couldn’t change any of that, even if she wanted to, and the old pain that she tried hard to ignore has come back with vengeance.''
  
'''Sharan:''' "...You're very ambitious. I guess being enthusiastic is a good thing. Please have a seat, and drink this potion. Now, breathe deeply..."
+
''She knows she is taking her anger and guilt out on Woon. Instead of encouraging him to forget the nightmare, she’s yelling at the youngest of them all because he’s changed.''
  
'''Kiri:''' "..."
+
'''Maywin:''' "…You’d better leave. Leave. Will you leave if I salute?"
  
'''Sharan:''' "..."
+
'''Woon:''' "I’ll go. Take care, and… I’m sorry."
  
'''Kiri:''' "Um... This is harder than I thought..."
+
'''Book:''' ''Woon leaves her room. Maywin nonchalantly pats her comforter smooth and holds her book back up. The tragic story of the main character is about to reach its climax. Starting from tomorrow, she’ll have to prepare for her retirement. She’s determined to forget about Woon and enjoy the rest of her day.''
  
'''Sharan:''' "Please focus. Everyone is capable of magic, each person has a different capacity for mana. Controlling mana is easy if you're familiar with controlling your inner energy."
+
'''Maywin:''' ""
  
'''Kiri:''' "I use guns, so I don't know how to control my inner energy."
+
'''Book:''' ''Maywin drops her book. After she was injured, she finally has the time to read this tragedy novel, and it’s boring.''
  
'''Sharan:''' "I thought you were a famous warrior from Empyrean? Even swordsmen learn how to control their inner energy."
+
''Nothing is more tragic than reality.''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Children of Chain Peace: Chapter 2
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book:''' ''Rebecca was young. Her [[Jakter|father]] was a great man, but he didn't know what to do with his daughter whom he had later in his life. He could've been a good adviser if she was older. But she was too young to understand her father's situation. She was angry with him for staying away from home all the time.''
  
'''Kiri:''' "Ah. *Chuckle* We Empyreans focus more on external energy than the internal. I don't know if that's the correct expression. Anyway, I think I know what you mean, but I don't know how to detect the energy inside me. Please teach me."
+
''Father was recognized at his work and transferred to the Imperial Capital. He wanted to take Mother and Rebecca with him, but Mother was born and lived in the desert all her life. She didn't want to go. She said she'd rather deal with the Kartel than with society's deep-rooted hatred toward the residents of the desert. Father left alone, and Mother acted as if he was dead. Their neighbors laughed about Father's stupidity to move to the Imperial Capital. Father disappeared from her life, but that didn't affect Rebecca. She stood her ground against the older boy Jay over being the leader of their gang.''
  
'''Sharan:''' "We Dark Elves live and breathe magic, so it's difficult to explain it to someone who doesn't. Close your eyes and try to remember one of the most unforgettable events in your life. Now, what do you feel?"
+
''Jay gave her many noogies, annoyed by the stubborn girl, but Rebecca, even as she cried and sniffled, didn't budge until he surrendered. Father kept in touch with Mother and Rebecca. He sent thick, technical books. Mother sold them for food and weapons. Mother believed in the safety of weapons. Rebecca was always on her mother's side, but sometimes she stole one of the books Father sent to read it. Mother pretended she didn't know. Their life changed when the war broke out.''
  
'''Kiri:''' "One of the most unforgettable events... I'm angry. Those Kartels... They're outlaws that raise hell and destroy everything wherever they go. But I hate traitors more than the Kartels!"
+
''The Kartel, having been acting suspiciously for a few years, crossed the sea and attacked the Imperial Capital. The villagers hated the Kartel, but they hated the Imperial Capital just as much. Some of the grownups said the Kartels were a proud rebellion army. Their hatred toward their country ran deep.''
  
'''Sharan:''' "Calm down! Don't get carried away by emotion. You'll lose control over your mana."
+
''There was a child of another soldier in the village. He was [[Woon]]. His father beat him, and the kids in the neighborhood made fun of him for being covered in bruises all the time. Rebecca always defended Woon, and he followed Rebecca as a puppy would its owner. They were like an older sister and her brother.''
  
'''Kiri:''' "Just thinking about them makes me angry. If only I could go back to Empyrean, I'll make them pay!"
+
''As the war dragged on, the Kartel's abuse on the people of the desert worsened. Rebecca's mother was the leader of the village militia, and one day was gravely injured while trying to protect the village against the Kartels. Before she died, she saw her husband's image in the misty eyes of her daughter. Since that day, Rebecca was no longer a little girl. She didn't know where her father was or cared to find him. She found the weapons that her mother hid and planned her future.''
  
'''Sharan:''' "Hm. This is the first time I've heard your story. I only knew you were from Empyrean. It may not be feasible to go back to Empyrean anytime soon, but I have good news: Kiri, you're gifted in magic."
+
''She came up with the name, Chain Peace. Jay laughed at her when she explained the name meant small rings of peace linked to form a greater peace. "Let's try not to break the chain before it's even created." The initial members were Rebecca, Jay, and Woon. Being as tall as a grown man, Jay naturally became their leader. Rebecca and Woon gathered information and Jay planned operations.''
  
'''Kiri:''' "Whoa... Really?"
+
''At first, their operation was mere child's play, but as time went by, they became very useful to the government army that was barely surviving in the Lawless District. They became famous. Teenager that had nowhere to go joined Chain Peace. [[Maywin]] was one of them. Grownups who were tired of the Kartel supplied them with weapons and food. The Wespeace Army also increased its support for Chain Peace. As their numbers grew, the army wanted them to take on more various and dangerous missions. They got hurt more often the more they accomplished. They thought they really had a chance at defeating the Kartel.''
  
'''Sharan:''' "Yes. You said you weren't familiar with controlling your inner energy, but for a moment you were able to tap into your mana. You just got too worked up before you could do anything with it."
+
''They were wrong. Things weren't so easy. An [[Anton|electric-eating monster]] appeared, and again the Kartel crossed the sea. The news was that the Empyrean Royal Army was losing. Everyone in Chain Peace couldn't sleep. Around this time, Jay had changed. He and his close friends were always up to something, and one day they beat up a friend to "discipline him." Rebecca was always away on a mission, and by the time she knew what was happening, things were bad.''
  
'''Kiri:''' "Whoa, then can I fly in the sky too now?"
+
''Two had a big fight, Jay left Chain Peace, leaving Rebecca to lead it. The kids liked having Rebecca as their leader. She was more moderate and serious about their cause. After Jay left, the Kartel's operations to catch Chain Peace became more elaborate and accurate. Several times, they almost got busted. They really hated it, but they knew they had a mole among them. They were right.''
  
'''Sharan:''' "As I told you before, it depends on your aptitude and perseverance, but I can teach you the theory of flight. This is great. I didn't know if you'd be able to learn magic, and it turned out that you are more than capable. We should have a drink and celebrate."
+
''Feeling threatened, the members of Chain Peace insisted that the traitor be killed. After much consideration, Rebecca decided to move their headquarters to a remote place. During their move, they picked up a man named [[Roy]] dying in the middle of the desert. Roy was eccentric, but he was good with his hands. He created many useful things out of junk, and his inventions saved Chain Peace more than a few times. Roy stayed with them for several months, and soon after he left, they heard the news of the Imperial Princess's abduction.''
  
'''Kiri:''' "Sure! We Empyreans also drink and fire a gun salute when there are things to celebrate. I guess that's the same everywhere, huh?"
+
''Many grownups who fought the Kartels with them dropped their guns and surrendered. The children of Chain Peace were disheartened and despaired. The friends that they had yesterday became enemies today. But they couldn't stop fighting. The Kartel wasn't satisfied with the abduction of the Imperial Princess, so it decided to destroy the Imperial Capital. It drafted people of all ages and genders to fill its army. Chain Peace had to fight to survive. There was no time to relax. The children of Chain Peace grew weary and fought each other over trivial things. The existence of Chain Peace was at stake.''
  
'''Sharan:''' "Arad and Empyrean used to exchange and trade with each other, so I wouldn't be surprised if we share similar tradition. By the way, what's a gun salute?"
+
''Rebecca was still strong and confident in front of her friends, but when she was alone, she often thought about her father. She missed him, but she wasn't sure if she could meet him before she died. She didn't blame Mother for refusing to go to the Imperial Capital with Father. Rebecca tried to think her mother simply decided to go her own way, and that she was doing the same thing.''
  
'''Kiri:''' "Oh, you don't know. We hold a drink in one hand and a gun in the other hand, and start shooting... like this! (Excited starts firing her gun as she would at a tavern in Empyrean. Reagent bottles break and the sleeping cat takes flight, turning over the boiling cauldron along the way. Sharan's lab is in shambles. Dangerous chemicals have spilled on the floor, causing rising plumes of acrid smoke from the burn holes.) *Shriek*
+
''Rebecca was worried about her friends, most of all, Woon, who was losing his smile. Woon was like her brother, and it was hard to see him sit in the corner by himself for hours. He was too young to fight in the battlefield. She thought about sending him to a remote village, but no one was willing to take in a child. Things were hard for them as it was. The only thing she could do for Woon was give him her mother's keepsake necklace on his birthday. She wanted to cheer him up, and she also had a sense of foreboding that she couldn't seem to shake off.''
  
'''Sharan:''' "...Well, thank you very much for the gun salute. Kiri, now that you're my student, I expect you will clean up the mess you created without my help. It's apparent that you're full of bile and vinegar. You wouldn't need longer than 10 minutes to clean this up, would you?"
+
''Bad feelings can never be wrong. Rebecca was hurrying out of the cave filled with fire and screams when she encountered Jay after a long time. A corner of her mouth lifted in a soundless snicker. At that moment, she looked just like her father, but, of course, she didn't know it.''
  
'''Kiri:''' "10 minutes?"
+
''It was the last day that anyone in Chain Peace ever saw Rebecca.''
 
 
'''Sharan:''' "Yes. That should be enough. Now, I have to go receive an audience with Her Majesty. When you'e done cleaning, read this book. Oh, one of the reagents you broke is a transformation formula. Be careful not to touch it."
 
 
 
'''Kiri:''' "Whoa, a transformation formula?"
 
 
 
'''Sharan:''' "Yes, it'll turn you into a shiny black bug, and you might get eaten by my cat before I have a chance to turn you back. So be careful, all right?"
 
 
 
'''Kiri:''' "*Shriek*"
 
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
|}
 
 
===Last Heir of the Ulus===
 
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|[[File:Last Heir of the Ulus Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Last Heir of the Ulus
+
|Title=Children of Chain Peace: Chapter 3
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''Book:''' ''"The world where they used to live was incomparable to Pandemonium. It was so big that it was immeasurable. The world was ruled by a race named Ulu. No two Ulus looked alike, and each and every one of them was strong. Breathing in the toxic air that burned the lungs and fighting the heat that melted iron, the Ulus grew stronger, thicker, and duller. Everything was scarce. They ate anything that they could eat and made use of everything they could find. In their world, survival was the biggest victory.''
+
'''Book:''' ''Jay was an orphan. He didn't have family, but he liked singing and performing in front of an audience. He thought he'd be a singer one day. Among his friends, gunslingers were more popular than singers, but he didn't like the loud noises of guns.''  
  
''There was another race who existed in the same era as the Ulus. They were smaller, but not weak, and they were clever. They used various survival methods. They developed skills to fight the Ulus, but they lost the battle. They accepted their defeat and served the Ulus as their gods. They called themselves the Tartan. The Ulus and the Tartan. Their strange symbiotic relationship had begun.''
+
''One time, he went to a neighboring village to watch a famous singer sing, and almost got drafted by the Kartel that thought he was a grown man because of his height. He realized survival was more important than anything else. He burned his music scores. He was twelve.''
  
''The Ulus let the Tartan live. In return, the Tartan fed the Ulus. The Ulus were too big to search for small game and they needed a lot of energy to maintain their big bodies. Over time the Ulus grew dependent on the Tartan. The Ulus had big strong bodies and the ability to take energy from anything that they ate, whereas the Tartan had highly adaptable bodies and the ability to connect to each other spiritually. The Tartan grew stronger physically the more time they spent with the Ulus, and they became more effective in hunting by using their unique spiritual network. Eventually, the Tartan became capable of cross-species spiritual connection with the Ulus.''
+
''Jay was the leader among his friends. Those who were older than Jay were busy learning how to shoot, leaving Jay to lead the younger kids. Things changed when a girl named [[Guide Rebecca|Rebecca]] decided that she wanted his place. That spunky tomboy changed the pattern of the little war that took place among the children in the neighborhood. Instead of brawling, they split into teams and played a make-believe war that was fairly impressively planned. The grownups chided at them, but they took the war seriously... although it always ended with everyone covered in mud, tears, and snot.''
  
''By that time, their world stopped functioning, as it was expected. The Ulus took from the world more that it had to offer, turning it barren. The Tartan had known this and tried to stop it, but there was nothing they could do. The Tartan were already part of the Ulus, and the insatiable appetite of their counterpart also affected them. They just had to watch their world dying.''
+
''Jay was known as a troublemaker, but he followed a rule: be romantic. It was the rule set by the famous gunslinger, [[Sandstorm Varracht]]. Jay first thought it would make a good song, and then decided it would be his rule in life. He did things that he thought were romantic: he led his friends. He fought a drunken man who was kicking a six-year-old. He joined [[Chain Peace]] to fight the Kartel with Rebecca and others. But deep inside, he knew he was using romance as an excuse to hide his real intentions. He wanted to lead his friends because he wanted to be better than them. He joined Rebecca's Chain Peace to survive.''
  
''In that dying world, Anton was the youngest Ulu. He was still small and light, enough to run quickly on his four legs. Compared to older Ulus whose heavy bodies weighed them down to such a degree that they could only move as fast as a snail, Anton was incredibly flexible and agile. The Tartan knew that. While observing the movement of the stars in the sky above the dying world, the Tartan received a revelation and knew it was time for them to leave. They got on Anton's body. It was not easy to abandon the gods that they had served for long, but they had no choice. As it was said earlier, survival was the biggest victory in their world.''
+
''The Kartel dragged away children when they became old enough to work. His villagers had been able to keep the Kartel away from their village, but that wouldn't last long. After they decided to create Chain Peace, the three left the village and realized they had nowhere to go. They called themselves gunslingers, but they were just teenagers without guardians. They didn't want to join the militia of a village lest they'd become cannon fodder, but they couldn't wander the desert forever.''
  
''Anton didn't disappoint the Tartan. He continued to maneuver through the rivers of boiling lava that started consuming their world. The only remaining patch of land was about to crumble into dust when a light shone from above them and a gentle voice was heard.''
+
''Jay contacted the Wespeace Army who was pushed back to the Imperial Capital and barely returned. The army was isolated in the Lawless District. The residents were afraid of the Kartel, but they refused to cooperate with the army. Jay hired innocent-looking girls and boys to collect information around villages and sold useful information to the army. The army needed local agents, so it reluctantly accepted Jay's offer. Negotiating with the grownups was tough, but Jay was doing better than he thought. He was going to save the money he got from the army and escape from the arid island.''
  
''"I've come for you."''
+
''But the Wespeace Army wouldn't let go of such a great agent. Jay started keeping secrets from Rebecca. It didn't take time before the executives of the army changed their affable attitude to overt threats. Jay thought about using [[Jakter the Eagle Eye|Rebecca's father]], but he was afraid of losing her. Things could get worse. The leaders of Empyrean didn't want to spend too much money on maintaining peace in the Lawless District. They wanted to keep the Kartels desperate and low on supplies. The Wespeace Army was desperate to get more support from the government, and if they recognized who Rebecca was, they wouldn't let her go to her father. They would use a dirty scheme to sacrifice Rebecca and get what they wanted from their headquarters.''
 +
 
 +
''While Jay was dealing with his own dilemma, Chain Peace became famous, and it was making him uncomfortable. The Wespeace Army wanted to use the children for their propaganda against the Kartel. The Wespeace Army demanded Jay that it wanted a model for their propaganda. Jay had to hide Rebecca from the army, so he sent [[Woon Lyonir|Woon]] instead. The picture of the small child carrying a gun as tall as he was featured in many newspapers with provocative titles. People on the other side of the sea were selfish, but they had a soft spot for children. Support flooded in, and the happy Wespeace Army saw that Chain Peace was put to good use.''
 +
 
 +
''Maybe it was because of her personality or upbringing, but Rebecca was ignorant of things that took place behind the curtains. She thought all she had to do was accomplish her missions and save people. She was a great tactician and an even greater marksman, but she wasn't a politician.''
 +
 
 +
''Because of the Wespeace Army's propaganda, children came from different places to join Chain Peace. The army executives urged Jay to grow Chain Peace quickly, so it could take on more important missions. The army's support for Chain Peace increased. Jay hoped he would soon have an opportunity to escape from all this.''
 +
 
 +
''But things don't always go as you plan, and sometimes they go in the completely opposite direction. The news was some [[Anton|giant monster]] had appeared in Eaton and was feeding on all of Empyrean's electrical power. At first, Jay thought it was a joke. It wasn't. Support stopped coming to the Wespeace Army. Things went badly.''
 +
 
 +
''The Kartel saw an opportunity. After exhausting every resource the Lawless District had left, which included the drying wells of mountainous villages, they marched back to the Imperial Capital. No news of the regular army's victory was heard. All news that Jay heard was about the army losing, and soon news stopped coming altogether. Jay felt like he was suffocating under the weight of his friends' expectations of him.''
 +
 
 +
''Jay started moving again for his survival. He and his close friends stole from others to make their living until they were caught. The Kartel soldier who caught him was a grownup from his hometown. He barely escaped, but for a while he couldn't sleep at night. Then he got caught by Rebecca and they had a big fight. Rebecca was as stubborn as she was when they fought over the leader position among their friends. He hated her for it, but he was guilty at the same time. He didn't apologize. His pride didn't allow it, and he also thought it was too late to change things. Then he saw Woon, who became frightened as soon as their eyes are met. His heart sank. Woon was like a brother to him, and he made that kid afraid of him. He didn't want to make Rebecca and Woon sad. He fought to survive and protect.''
 +
 
 +
''He hated the Kartel and hated cowardly grownups, but he had become one of them. He was so devastated and ashamed of himself that he had to leave Chain Peace. Those who worked as thieves with him followed him. The night he left his friends, Jay looked up the night sky and wondered. What if he stopped Rebecca from forming Chain Peace? What if he pursued his dream of becoming a singer? What if he was born somewhere other than the Lawless District?''
  
''Before their world was completely destroyed, Anton and the Tartan stepped on to the new world. The moment that their legs touched the new land, their old world vanished as if it never existed, as if it was barely waiting for Anton to move on, so it could die. Just as in the revelation that the Tartan received, Anton was the Chosen."''
+
''All the what ifs were meaningless now. The merciless sandstorm stung his eyes and nose. He wouldn't be able to see Rebecca and Woon again. Come to think of it, those two were his family. Jay prayed for their safety and moved on.''
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
|}
 
 
===Old Friend===
 
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|[[File:Old Friend Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Old Friend
+
|Title=Children of Chain Peace: Chapter 4
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''Linus:''' "Wow, who's this? What a pleasant surprise!"
+
'''Book:''' ''Woon’s father was a hunter. He couldn’t remember exactly when he first learned how to approach game without alerting it, but he remembered that he learned to shoot a gun before his teens and that his father was a good hunter. The makeshift bullets that even petty thieves wouldn’t want were cheaper than a bottle of alcohol. Woon hunted small animals to support his father’s drinking habit. His mother was a soldier but she didn’t come home often.''
  
'''Aganzo:''' "Linus? I didn't know you were on Behemoth."
+
''He didn’t remember when Mother became a soldier, but it was probably after Father lost his left leg. When Father got drunk, he often beat Woon and kicked him out of the house, forcing him to sleep under the roof. His skin was always blue and yellow with bruises and scabs over scratches from animal claws. The village grownups weren’t unkind, but they weren’t caring either. None of them tried to stop Woon’s father from beating him.''
  
'''Linus:''' "I didn't know you were here either. The Adventurer arrived a while ago, followed by the Imperial Knights, and now you. Has something serious happened?"
+
''Jay, the oldest boy in the neighbourhood, defended Woon against his father, and the strong, righteous mother of Rebecca took him home and bathed and fed him. Rebecca acted as if Woon was always bothersome, but she’d always wanted a younger brother, and Woon was affable and charming. She and Woon got close quickly. Rebecca took good care of him and didn’t mind sharing her mother with him.''
  
'''Aganzo:''' "I don't know yet. It could be just Vaughn blowing things out of proportion. What are you doing here? Are you playing blacksmith because of what happened a long time ago? Well, I'm really in no position to judge you. But really, why are you here?"
+
''But Little Woon’s good behaviour and cheerful personality were the results of his father’s violence and his mother’s negligence. Woon was afraid of being abandoned, so he was desperate to please Rebecca and her mother, and that saddened Rebecca’s mother. The happiest days of his life ended with the death of Rebecca’s mother. Rebecca and Jay decided to fight the Kartel, and Woon insisted that he’d be included. He couldn’t imagine fighting grownups, but he was afraid of losing the two.''
  
'''Linus:''' "If I start talking about myself, we'll end up staying up all night, drinking. I came here because of Cinda. I've been learning smithing from him. The Great Metastasis made him think. I guess he was worried that he had no one to pass down his skill. He asked if I wanted to be his apprentice. I've decided to become a blacksmith, and I'm lucky to have such a great teacher. He told me not to call him Master, though. Anyway, he wanted me to come here, so I followed him. I also wanted to see some minerals unique to this place."
+
''On the day they left the village, Rebecca said that they should take the same family name. Jayu scoffed, but he came up with myriad family names. They bickered over the name for a while, and then decided on Lyonir. Woon became Woon Lyonir. He was happy because he felt like he’d become their real brother. He would later learn that Rebecca wanted a different family name to avoid her father.''
  
'''Aganzo:''' "I see."
+
''Chain Peace had a good cause, but its existence was precarious. The Wespeace Army thought the children could serve as a good tool to sway public opinion. It provided Chain Peace enough support to continue its existence. It also gave jobs. Woon was an excellent marksman. He was afraid of fighting, but he soldiered on. He didn’t want to be a burden to Jay and Rebecca.''
  
'''Linus:''' "Enough about me. How have you been? The Magathas are the only source of news from Arad, and they don't come here often."
+
''The news of the young heroes fighting the Kartels became a great issue among people on the other side of the sea. It was around this time that he earned the nickname, Little Lyonir. The more children bled, the more sympathetic the general populace became.''
  
'''Aganzo:''' "Things are not good in Arad."
+
''Woon couldn’t understand. If they felt so sorry for the children of Chain Peace, they should come over and help. Instead, they watched them from the other side of the sea and wept for them. Jay brought Woon with him whenever he had a meeting with the Wespeace Army. War correspondents he met at those meetings made him bleed from his knees, so he became afraid of soldier but he hated to show it.''
  
'''Linus:''' "...I see."
+
''For a while, he tried searching for his mother by asking the soldiers. None of them knew where his mother was. Even now, Woon doesn’t know if his mother is alive or where she is.''
  
'''Aganzo:''' "Linus, I don't know how valuable those unique minerals are, but don't you want to return to Arad?"
+
''Woon was the youngest among the members of Chain Peace. Age was a deciding factor of the ranks among the members, so Jay and Rebecca forbade Woon from calling them Brother and Sister. They also made him present in every strategy meeting. Some members objected at first, but they shut up. Woon was one of the most talented marksmen in Chain Peace.''
  
'''Linus:''' "This is not a bad place to live. It's filled with mysterious minerals and the scenery changes every minute. And I like listening to the GBL doctrines. They teach me new things."
+
''After their leader Jay left Chain Peace, Rebecca became the leader. Then reality started pressuring Chain Peace. A monster named Anton appeared and the Kartel abducted the Imperial Princess. Some good things happened, but things were mostly tough. The kartel continued to close in on Chain Peace. Its members ran and reappeared as its enemies or corpses. The children of Chain Peace were their losing reasons to live. The only thing that kept them from going was their leader Rebecca. She took care of all the dirty work and stayed up all night strategizing to find food and fight the Kartels. Rebecca was a born hero.''
  
'''Aganzo:''' "Linus, you've changed a lot."
+
''Countless times, Woon thought the war would’ve ended more easily if that incident didn’t happen or if he saved Rebecca that day. But he couldn’t, and Rebecca was still missing to this day. He tried to remember something that could help him find Rebecca, but he couldn’t put together the fragments of his memory of that day.''
  
'''Linus:''' "I have. Since the Great Metastasis."
+
''Red sky. Shouts and explosions. Faces of dying friends. He was bloody, and Rebecca carried him on her back. Those were the things he could remember. He didn’t know who betrayed them or who threw the bomb. Actually none of them mattered now. He lost anger, sadness, and happiness that day. Woon thought he died that day. He hated that his body was still breathing. He pointed his gun at himself more than a few times, but didn’t pull the trigger because of what Rebecca said.''
  
'''Aganzo:''' "..."
+
''She once gave him her mother’s keepsake as his birthday gift. She patted Woon on his head and smiled sadly.''
  
'''Linus:''' "I'm just worried that you're dwelling on the past."
+
“It might be too late, but I miss my father.
  
'''Aganzo:''' "You're not the first one to tell me that."
+
''He wanted to grant her wish. He could hardly remember what happened to Chain Peace on that day, but he could remember Rebecca’s voice like he heard it just yesterday.''
  
'''Linus:''' "And I won't be the last."
+
''He didn’t know if she was alive, but there was no proof of her death. He refused to let go of that little bit of hope. Woon would continue to fight until Rebecca, still the teenage girl in his mind, could be happily united with her father.''
 
+
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
'''Aganzo:''' "I have nothing to say about that."
+
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
+
|Title=Children of Chain Peace: Chapter 5
'''Linus:''' "I see."
+
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book:''' ''Anton was defeated and the Empyrean Royal Army was back in Ghent, but the soldiers couldn't rest. The war was over, but the safety of the Imperial Capital was still precarious. The main duty of the Empyrean Royal Army wasn't dealing with external threats, but maintaining internal peace. Empyrean was geographically isolated, and its population was small enough for a single military organization to manage up to now. Ghent had been dealing with small and big conflicts. From adventurers from Arad to thieves that became prevalent in the ravage of war, all the problems were the exhausted soldiers' to deal with.''
 +
 
 +
''[[Jackter]] didn't know what to say to his aid who had to return before his two days of vacation even started. He wanted to force him to go back home, but for the brief moment his aid was gone, the Ghent headquarters was thrown into chaos. [[Woon]], oblivious of his boss's dilemma, reported his return and immediately got to work. Except a few of his subordinates who got grumpy over their boss's unexpected return, everyone breathed a sigh of relief: finally things could get done. Woon worked for three days straight, except when he was eating and showering, to catch up with work. When he was finally done, he staggered to the documentation center next to his office, and then laid down on the bench. He was going to take a short nap before his subordinates came to work.''  
  
'''Aganzo:''' "I'd better leave. I have someone waiting for me."
+
''In the afternoon, he would accompany the general officers to the hospital. The general officers were planning to demand more hospitals from the Council of Nobility. As their escort, he would have to be on his guard every minute, watching for any possible attack on the important figures. He must have strained himself. The injury that had not yet healed throbbed. He didn't mind the pain, but the throbbing triggered the voices that he'd been hearing for the last ten years. He heard many voices in his head. Some were of fallen soldiers of his and others were from the enemies he killed. A lot of soldiers of this country experienced the same symptoms, having gone through a war that lasted for years.''
  
'''Linus:''' "All right. How long are you going to be here? When you're done with your business, you should come by. I've got some good liquor that I'd love to share with you and your friends."
+
''Woon listened to his soldiers' complaints, but he never told anyone he had the same problem. He couldn't afford to look damaged. It would interfere with his plan. He also didn't want to disgrace his commander, and he must stay in the army to accomplish his lifetime mission. He had been trying to act normally. While leading his army, he gritted his teeth and reminded himself that the soldiers behind him were not his enemies. When he heard stories about [[Chain Peace]], he tried to breathe normally. Acting tough, but he did it with grim determination. At first, he didn't think he could pretend to be normal. But he saw the survivors of Chain Peace devolve. He didn't want to be one of them. He was almost perfect with his acting except for one thing.''
  
'''Aganzo:''' "I will."
+
'''Woon:''' "...!"
  
'''Siran:''' "Are you done talking? Who's this? A friend? Don't worry. I have poor hearing. I couldn't hear what you were talking about. Anyway, what is he doing here?"
+
'''Lukas:''' "Wah!"
  
'''Aganzo:''' "He's a blacksmith. What do you think he's doing?"
+
'''Book:''' ''Woon jolted awake. Someone was with him, and he wasn't sure if this was real or if he was dreaming. In his blurry eyes, the brawny man looked looked like a Kartel soldier one moment and then a Tartan the next.''
  
'''Siran:''' "Don't snap at me. Why are you angrier now that you've met an old friend? I don't understand you."
+
'''Lukas:''' "Um... Colonel Woon? I'm Second Lieutenant Lukas. I'm sorry to disturb you. I've brought some letters for you. I was just going to leave them with you and leave..."
  
'''Aganzo:''' "Sometimes it's hard to accept that your friend has changed and there's nothing I can do about it."
+
'''Woon:''' "...Are you new?"
  
'''Siran:''' "I've never seen you so worried about someone else. He must be so important to you."
+
'''Book:''' ''Woon asked curtly as he loosened his grip on his gun. The magazine he removed before he took a nap dropped onto the floor below the bench.''
  
'''Aganzo:''' "We've been through a lot together. ...I don't know why I'm telling you this. Let's go. Vaughn is waiting."
+
'''Woon:''' "I'm sorry. I'll be out in a minute. You can leave now. And call me by my family name, will you? I won't be able to recognize you by your voice."
  
'''Siran:''' "All right. You can tell me more over a drink later. He looks like he likes drinking, too. Didn't he offer you some good liquor by chance?"
+
'''Lukas:''' "Huh? Yes, sir. I'll leave the letters here for you."
  
'''Aganzo:''' "Are you sure you didn't hear us?"
+
'''Book:''' ''The lower-ranking officer who was older than him hurriedly left the room. Woon breathed a long sigh. His back was wet with cold sweat. According to the clock, he slept for about three hours. He was still tired, but not as much as before he took a nap. He must have been tense since he paid [[Maywin]] at the hospital. It was understandable: one of the survivors of Chain Peace was hurt. He diagnosed his condition as if it was someone else's.''
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
|}
 
  
===Talking about Kartel===
+
''Listening to the birds chirping outside the window, Woon checked the letters Second Lieutenant Lukas left for him. One of them was from Maywin. He tilted his head. Maywin was the one who didn't want to keep in touch. She must have been in a hurry when she wrote the letter. The handwriting was sloppy and the message was short. She thanked him for his visit and wrote her new address in case he wanted to see her.''
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
+
 
 +
'''Woon:''' "(Should I be grateful or sorry about this?)"
 +
 
 +
'''Book:''' ''Confused, Woon opened the next letter. It was a request to approve the recruitment of boy soldiers aged thirteen to sixteen to restore public order more quickly. The request was sent from the Wespeace headquarters, and must be reported to the commander-in-chief. Woon read the letter several times, and then slowly crumpled it. He was hearing the voices again.''
 +
 
 +
'''Chain Peace Child 1:''' "Woon, help me!"
 +
 
 +
'''Chain Peace Child 2:''' "Woon! Woon! My leg... It's gone... It hurts..."
 +
 
 +
'''Chain Peace Child 3:''' "Woon, please help me! It hurts so bad... I don't want to die!"
 +
 
 +
'''Book:''' ''Woon Lyonir grabbed his head in anguish. He didn't come out of the documentation center for a long time.''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
 +
 
 +
===Happy Magic Classroom===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
|[[File:Talking about Kartel Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
+
|[[File:Happy Magic Classroom Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Talking about Kartel: Chapter 1
+
|Title=Happy Magic Classroom
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''Book:''' "''The Kartel we know now is different from the Kartel when it was first formed. Back then, the Kartel was just a ragtag bunch of hotheads looking for trouble. They indulged in excessive drinking and violence, a deadly combination that always led to drunken shootouts. It's been only ten years since the word Kartel was recognized as the name for these outlaws, but the history of the Kartel dates back further.''
+
'''Kiri:''' "Yoo-hoo! Good morning! Long time, no see, Sharan!"
  
''Some twenty years ago, two young men, [[Enzo Sipo]] and [[Sandstorm Varracht]], led Edon's Brotherhood together. They were the most famous gunslingers of the Lawless District, and because they kept the streets peaceful, the residents didn't mind having them around. Of course, they were ruthless to their enemies, and this gentlemanly yet cold-hearted killer image that they established was attractive to friend and foe alike.''
+
'''Sharan:''' "Ah, yes. Good morning."
  
''But it wasn't just their charisma as individuals that inspired the organization of the Kartel. All outlaws live by their own rules and refused to be tied down by the constraints of society. They often exist in small groups, but they can never make an army that requires myriad rules for its management. How did these outlaws who are individualists to the core gather forces and grow so big as a group? How did they turn themselves into a well-organized army? To understand them, we first have to think about the deep-seated sense of inferiority and anger within the people of Wespeace, also known as the Lawless District.''
+
'''Kiri:''' "You must have been busy. I haven't seen you for a while."
  
''The Lawless District is a barren land once used as a prisoner camp. For a hundred years, the descendants of the prisoners were forced to remain in the land by the government. When the residents were finally freed from the sins of their fathers and allowed to move anywhere they wanted, outside society refused to take them in. In the eyes of the society, they remained synonymous with failure.''
+
'''Sharan:''' "I've been busy with the school. Um, excuse me now. I have a report to write."
  
''That's why the story of Brigadier General [[Jackter Elrox]], born in the Lawless District and rising through the ranks in the Empyrean Royal army after he moved to the Imperial Capital, drew so much attention. Regarding the most successful case of Archpriest Beldron's recruitment out of the Lawless District, Elrox said this in an interview:''
+
'''Kiri:''' "A report? You're still busy, huh? Is there something I can do for you? I want to help. And when we're done, I'd like to learn the basics of magic. The other day, you said you would teach me."
''"...There are people who crossed the sea, but when their accent and mannerism give them away, the discrimination begins and they became more miserable than they were when they left the Lawless District. They return, and their stories discourage the rest from getting out to the larger world."''
 
  
''That became an endless cycle, and the residents of the Lawless District developed a yearning and resentment toward the society outside their world. The government initiated policies to embrace the residents, but they were still in its infancy. The residents of the Lawless District drank and fought to temporarily forget their anger and frustration. After days and years of meaningless destruction and hopelessness, a question came to their minds all of a sudden: "Why does it have to be us?"''
+
'''Sharan:''' "That was because you wouldn't leave me alone. Hm... All right. I'm not supposed to teach magic to anyone other than Dark Elves, but as the principal of the academy, I shouldn't ignore someone so eager to learn."
  
''That was a valid question on their end, but it was the prelude to disaster for us.''"
+
'''Kiri:''' "Really? Yippee! Then can you teach me how to summon fire pillars with a snap of my fingers?"
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Talking about Kartel: Chapter 2
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Book:''' ''"Now, let's move our focus back to Edon's Brotherhood. Twenty years ago, the Kartel didn't exist. Instead, a myriad of big and small gangs fought and killed each other in turf wars. No one dared united them into one group.''
 
  
''Meanwhile, the question that crossed someone's mind became a movement and spread throughout the entire district. Some were tired of endless violence. Some wanted to grow in power. Some just wanted a reason to fight. Everyone had a different goal, but they rose in arms together. It was  a chaotic time. Intense battles were fought everywhere in the district. Those who couldn't fight crossed the sea because being alive and discriminated was better than being dead, but they weren't many.''
+
'''Sharan:''' "...You're very ambitious. I guess being enthusiastic is a good thing. Please have a seat, and drink this potion. Now, breathe deeply..."
  
''Everyone in the district, regardless of their gender and age, had deep-seated anger that they exploded at each other. Edon's Brotherhood had been absorbing weaker, smaller organizations that failed to survive the competition. Brigadier General reminisced about those times, shared the following.''
+
'''Kiri:''' "..."
  
''"While other gangs and organizations advocated great causes, Edon's Brotherhood carried the banner for romance. It was a smart strategy. It helped them evade persecution by the Wespeace Army that regarded Edon's Brotherhood as a group of posers. Outlaws, tired of the great causes of other organizations, sought refuge in Edon's Brotherhood because it let them be the carefree outlaws they were. Also, gangs that were too weak to survive the competition wanted to ally with Edon's Brotherhood. Edon's Brotherhood continued to grow, and by the time other organizations realized the threat that it posed, it was too late."''
+
'''Sharan:''' "..."
  
''The leader Sipo was a great tactician. Varracht, who claimed to be the second-in-command, was high-handed, but had charismatic leadership. These two worked together for a long time. In the beginning, Sipo and Varracht wanted the same thing: a romantic, carefree life. But as their organization grew, their goals had to change, and with the absorption of Rangelus's Guerillas, Sipo began entertaining the idea of dominating the whole country. Rangelus, leader of the Guerillas, became Sipo's right-hand man, promptly pushing aside Varracht, a romantist to the core, and Sipo let that happen. He abandoned his friend of ten years. Varracht continued to support Sipo and tried to turn Edon's Brotherhood back to what it used to be, but he couldn't stop the change of the tide. In the end, he left the organization by himself."''
+
'''Kiri:''' "Um... This is harder than I thought..."
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Talking about Kartel: Chapter 3
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Book:''' ''"To prevent your confusion, I avoided using the word, Kartel. Kartel is a variation of cartel whose dictionary definition is "a written agreement between belligerent groups." Edon's Brotherhood led by Sipo has formed an outlaw cartel with various other organizations. After Varracht's withdrawal, Edon's Brotherhood expanded rapidly, until there was no other cartel left standing in the Lawless District. Ironically, the end of Varracht's involvement in Edon's Brotherhood, which he created with Sipo, marked the beginning of the Kartel.''
 
  
''For the next ten years, the Kartel has transformed from a gang of outlaws into a well-trained army. equipped with advanced military technology. Of course, the Kartel cannot compete with Empyrean's scientific advancement led by the Seven Shards or with the time-tested structure and strategic strength of the Empyrean Royal Army, but nevertheless the outlaw army has continued to grow and already has a number of victories against us under its belt.''
+
'''Sharan:''' "Please focus. Everyone is capable of magic, each person has a different capacity for mana. Controlling mana is easy if you're familiar with controlling your inner energy."
  
''Some intellectuals have voiced their concerns about the Kartel, but a majority of the general populace is being more optimistic, believing that the Kartel will die out naturally once it runs out of resources. Such belief has a point, given the disadvantageous environment of the Lawless District. Also it doesn't bode well for the Kartel that its growing violence has caused it to fall out of favor with the residents of the district. Now, can we really count on the Lawless District's "self-purification ability?"''
+
'''Kiri:''' "I use guns, so I don't know how to control my inner energy."
  
''[[Doctor Gizel Logan]], Empyrean's greatest scientist and a member of the Seven Shards, has visited the Lawless District several times for his research on the Galaha Desert. His answer to my question about the Kartel's longevity was:''
+
'''Sharan:''' "I thought you were a famous warrior from Empyrean? Even swordsmen learn how to control their inner energy."
  
''"It's true the Kartel has great influence over Wespeace Island, but the locals said it'd been suffering from internal disputes and it's clearly evident, even to a stranger like me. I don't doubt the scarcity of supplies is a major issue. Belonging to an organization means you have to follow rules whether you like it or not, but outlaws don't have the discipline or want to live by other people's rules. The Kartel will never last long."''
+
'''Kiri:''' "Ah. *Chuckle* We Empyreans focus more on external energy than the internal. I don't know if that's the correct expression. Anyway, I think I know what you mean, but I don't know how to detect the energy inside me. Please teach me."
  
''Brigadier General Elrox, with whom I've had multiple interviews in preparation for this book, has a different opinion.''
+
'''Sharan:''' "We Dark Elves live and breathe magic, so it's difficult to explain it to someone who doesn't. Close your eyes and try to remember one of the most unforgettable events in your life. Now, what do you feel?"
  
''"The Kartels have survived the harsh conditions of the Lawless District. They're as resilient as they're vengeful. All of them are angry at the social structure of Empyrean, and their aggression has been further aggravated by the rules set down by their organization. But Sipo is good at distracting his soldiers from directing their anger at him. Once he conquers Wespeace, he'll point his gun at the outside world. And there will be blood. We need to prepare for that time."''
+
'''Kiri:''' "One of the most unforgettable events... I'm angry. Those Kartels... They're outlaws that raise hell and destroy everything wherever they go. But I hate traitors more than the Kartels!"
  
''It wouldn't be the first time the Lawless District revolted against the rest of society, but all its attempts at rebellion were frustrated more quickly than they started because of its perpetual lack of supplies. The optimistic point of view on the Kartel is valid, but I have to agree with the pessimists that the Kartel is growing too quickly. Maybe I'm worry too much, but I'm a firm believer that prevention is better than cure. Maybe it's time we take the threat of the Kartel seriously."''
+
'''Sharan:''' "Calm down! Don't get carried away by emotion. You'll lose control over your mana."
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
|}
 
  
===Young Imperial Knight===
+
'''Kiri:''' "Just thinking about them makes me angry. If only I could go back to Empyrean, I'll make them pay!"
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|[[File:Young Imperial Knight Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Young Imperial Knight: Chapter 1
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn Walshuted, having defeated the evil monster Sirocco that terrorized all of Arad, just returned home and was bombarded with attention. The people of the Empire praised and blessed the young Blade Master who accomplished something that all the others couldn't. Women threw flower petals at the boy hero, and men applauded as he passed by. Children followed Vaughn in procession, shouting excitedly. The sounds of trumpets and shouts echoed in the air. Vaughn, dazed from all the attention, entered the palace and knelt before the emperor."''
 
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Vaughn Walshuted reporting his return, Your Majesty."
+
'''Sharan:''' "Hm. This is the first time I've heard your story. I only knew you were from Empyrean. It may not be feasible to go back to Empyrean anytime soon, but I have good news: Kiri, you're gifted in magic."
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Welcome back, and congratulations on your great accomplishment. You're young, but so strong. Even the most skilled court mage lost his life to that heinous monster Sirocco."
+
'''Kiri:''' "Whoa... Really?"
  
'''Vaughn:''' "I couldn't have done it alone. If it weren't for the other Blade Masters who were there with me, I would also been killed."
+
'''Sharan:''' "Yes. You said you weren't familiar with controlling your inner energy, but for a moment you were able to tap into your mana. You just got too worked up before you could do anything with it."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn speaks in a firm, clear tone. He could've taken the credit to himself, but he didn't forget to mention the other Blade Masters. The emperor smiled."''
+
'''Kiri:''' "Whoa, then can I fly in the sky too now?"
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "You're humble. But today's your day. You can enjoy the compliments you deserve. You're a proud knight of the Empire."
+
'''Sharan:''' "As I told you before, it depends on your aptitude and perseverance, but I can teach you the theory of flight. This is great. I didn't know if you'd be able to learn magic, and it turned out that you are more than capable. We should have a drink and celebrate."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Pardon? Um, I'm not a knight."
+
'''Kiri:''' "Sure! We Empyreans also drink and fire a gun salute when there are things to celebrate. I guess that's the same everywhere, huh?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn lowers his head, worried the emperor might get upset at his pointing the mistake. The emperor's smile widens."''
+
'''Sharan:''' "Arad and Empyrean used to exchange and trade with each other, so I wouldn't be surprised if we share similar tradition. By the way, what's a gun salute?"
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "You are now. As of this moment, you will serve me and your country as a knight. Come closer and kneel."
+
'''Kiri:''' "Oh, you don't know. We hold a drink in one hand and a gun in the other hand, and start shooting... like this! (Excited starts firing her gun as she would at a tavern in Empyrean. Reagent bottles break and the sleeping cat takes flight, turning over the boiling cauldron along the way. Sharan's lab is in shambles. Dangerous chemicals have spilled on the floor, causing rising plumes of acrid smoke from the burn holes.) *Shriek*
  
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn lifts his head, surprised. He couldn't take the knight training. He was a great swordsman, but he didn't have the backing to get him into the knight apprentice program. But he doesn't have hang-ups about it. He's content practicing his swordsmanship on his own, and he doesn't need the knight title to prove himself. He's already a Blade Master and that's enough for him. Well, that's more than enough, actually, when it comes to swordsmanship. But if the emperor wants to knight him, he's all for it."''
+
'''Sharan:''' "...Well, thank you very much for the gun salute. Kiri, now that you're my student, I expect you will clean up the mess you created without my help. It's apparent that you're full of bile and vinegar. You wouldn't need longer than 10 minutes to clean this up, would you?"
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Vaughn Walshuted, do you swear that you will observe chivalry, follow justice, and protect your country and people against any and all threats?"
+
'''Kiri:''' "10 minutes?"
  
'''Vaughn:''' "I do."
+
'''Sharan:''' "Yes. That should be enough. Now, I have to go receive an audience with Her Majesty. When you'e done cleaning, read this book. Oh, one of the reagents you broke is a transformation formula. Be careful not to touch it."
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Vaughn Walshuted, I hereby pronounce that you're an honorable knight of the De Los Empire. Do you promise conspicuous gallantry and selfless dedication to your duty to your country?"
+
'''Kiri:''' "Whoa, a transformation formula?"
  
'''Vaughn:''' "I do."
+
'''Sharan:''' "Yes, it'll turn you into a shiny black bug, and you might get eaten by my cat before I have a chance to turn you back. So be careful, all right?"
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Vaughn Walshuted, do you swear your fealty to me, Leon Heinrich, the First Knight and the legitimate ruler of the De Los Empire?"
+
'''Kiri:''' "*Shriek*"
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
  
'''Vaughn:''' "I do."
+
===Last Heir of the Ulus===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:Last Heir of the Ulus Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Last Heir of the Ulus
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book:''' ''"The world where they used to live was incomparable to Pandemonium. It was so big that it was immeasurable. The world was ruled by a race named Ulu. No two Ulus looked alike, and each and every one of them was strong. Breathing in the toxic air that burned the lungs and fighting the heat that melted iron, the Ulus grew stronger, thicker, and duller. Everything was scarce. They ate anything that they could eat and made use of everything they could find. In their world, survival was the biggest victory.''
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Your loyalty will be rewarded with my trust, and your betrayal with my wrath. Your pledge to me will remain effective until the day you die, and only then you'll be freed from your responsibility. Now lift your head and rise. You're now a knight and baron of the De Los Empire."
+
''There was another race who existed in the same era as the Ulus. They were smaller, but not weak, and they were clever. They used various survival methods. They developed skills to fight the Ulus, but they lost the battle. They accepted their defeat and served the Ulus as their gods. They called themselves the Tartan. The Ulus and the Tartan. Their strange symbiotic relationship had begun.''
  
'''Claus:''' "...!"
+
''The Ulus let the Tartan live. In return, the Tartan fed the Ulus. The Ulus were too big to search for small game and they needed a lot of energy to maintain their big bodies. Over time the Ulus grew dependent on the Tartan. The Ulus had big strong bodies and the ability to take energy from anything that they ate, whereas the Tartan had highly adaptable bodies and the ability to connect to each other spiritually. The Tartan grew stronger physically the more time they spent with the Ulus, and they became more effective in hunting by using their unique spiritual network. Eventually, the Tartan became capable of cross-species spiritual connection with the Ulus.''
  
'''Book:''' ''"The entire Court stirs. The courtiers gape at the emperor, unable to believe what he just has announced. The emperor doesn't even bat an eye. He's just knighted and baronized someone who is only good at swinging a sword."''
+
''By that time, their world stopped functioning, as it was expected. The Ulus took from the world more that it had to offer, turning it barren. The Tartan had known this and tried to stop it, but there was nothing they could do. The Tartan were already part of the Ulus, and the insatiable appetite of their counterpart also affected them. They just had to watch their world dying.''
  
'''Schuman:''' "(Has His Majesty gone insane? I thought Vaughn would only be made baron. He can't knight and baronize a goon with the Ghost Arm!)"
+
''In that dying world, Anton was the youngest Ulu. He was still small and light, enough to run quickly on his four legs. Compared to older Ulus whose heavy bodies weighed them down to such a degree that they could only move as fast as a snail, Anton was incredibly flexible and agile. The Tartan knew that. While observing the movement of the stars in the sky above the dying world, the Tartan received a revelation and knew it was time for them to leave. They got on Anton's body. It was not easy to abandon the gods that they had served for long, but they had no choice. As it was said earlier, survival was the biggest victory in their world.''
  
'''Book:''' ''"Even Vaughn is stunned by the emperor's announcement. The only other person who remains calm is Conrad of House Krueger, a prestigious family of warriors."''
+
''Anton didn't disappoint the Tartan. He continued to maneuver through the rivers of boiling lava that started consuming their world. The only remaining patch of land was about to crumble into dust when a light shone from above them and a gentle voice was heard.''
  
'''Conrad:''' "(A baron and knight. The emperor can be mischievous if he wants to be, but he's just made a lot of people angry. Still, Walshuted can hold his own. He's better than any of those corrupt knights.)"
+
''"I've come for you."''
  
'''Book:''' ''"Krueger is the only person who welcomes Vaughn's unexpected knighthood. Vaughn, unaware of the quick, furtive exchanges of gazes behind his back, swears his fealty to the emperor in a firm voice."''
+
''Before their world was completely destroyed, Anton and the Tartan stepped on to the new world. The moment that their legs touched the new land, their old world vanished as if it never existed, as if it was barely waiting for Anton to move on, so it could die. Just as in the revelation that the Tartan received, Anton was the Chosen."''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Thank you, Your Majesty. I'm now yours to command."
+
===Old Friend===
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
+
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:Old Friend Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Young Imperial Knight: Chapter 2
+
|Title=Old Friend
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''Vaughn:''' "Emily! Emily!"
+
'''Linus:''' "Hey who's this? Long time no see!"
  
'''Book:''' ''"As soon as he left the Court, Vaughn ran to a quiet garden where a girl was waiting for him. It was difficult to get through so many people that wanted to see the great hero from close range, but he plowed through with determination to see his girl Emily, whom he thought about every day during his long journey. She was waiting for him in their special place. She turned as he approached, calling her name. She was startled at Vaughn's unkempt appearance (from the people grabbing at his hair and clothes as he passed by), but the surprise was quickly replaced with a big, beautiful smile, as she ran to her lover, her skirt bustling and fluttering behind her. Vaughn picked her up and spun with her in his arm. Emily tightened her arms around his neck."''
+
'''Aganzo:''' "Linus. You're still in this village."
  
'''Emily:''' "Vaughn, you're back! Oh, Vaughn!"
+
'''Linus:''' "And you're still adventuring. How are you?"
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Yes, I am! I came to see you as soon as I left the palace. Ah, Emily! Something great happened today! Guess what I am now."
+
'''Aganzo:''' "Fine. Thank you."
  
'''Emily:''' "You've been knighted, haven't you? *Shriek* Oh, I'm so happy for you! You're so great!"
+
'''Linus:''' "Let's go have a drink. You're not busy, are you?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn put Emily down. Emily continues to chatter excitedly, but Vaughn looks disappointed."''
+
'''Aganzo:''' "Not at all. ...How do you like a blacksmith?"
  
'''Vaughn:''' "What? Who told you? Gah, I wanted to be the first one to tell you that."
+
'''Linus:''' "It's not as exciting as being an adventurer, but I like hammering and turning metal into usable things. It's quite rewarding. If you're interested, why don't you try yourself? Who knows; you might uncover your life's true calling, like I did."
  
'''Emily:''' "Everyone was talking about it. Even Father said you were good enough to be knighted. So did Uncle Conrad!"
+
'''Aganzo:''' "That sounds interesting, but I'll have to say no for now."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Sir Conrad von Krueger?"
+
'''Linus:''' "I've always wanted to ask you this. What are you hanging on to?"
  
'''Emily:''' "Yes. Uncle Conrad said you'd be made viscount, too. This is great! Now Mother can't object to our marriage anymore!"
+
'''Aganzo:''' "What do you mean?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Looking down at Emily in his arms, Vaughn grins."''
+
'''Linus:''' "To me, you look like you're wandering without a purpose."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Viscount? I'm a baron now. A baron!"
+
'''Aganzo:''' "Well I didn't think an adventurer needs a purpose."
  
'''Emily:''' "...Really? Really?! Baron Walshuted! That sounds perfect!"
+
'''Linus:''' "I'm saying, you look like you need a purpose. In a way, I think you're wandering to find a purpose."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Unable to contain her happiness, Emily starts jumping with her hands around his arm. Vaughn also jumps, laughing. It seems even the sun is congratulating these two lovers. It takes a while for the couple of young lovers to calm down, but they keep their hands linked together as they walk to a tree and sit under the shade."''
+
'''Aganzo:''' "To find a purpose... Maybe. For some time I've been trying to stop the Metastasis, but frankly I don't know why I'm doing it. I've been telling others that I'm trying to stop another Screaming Cavern incident from threatening Arad, but sometimes I wonder if the world's peace is really important to me."
  
'''Emily:''' "I was worried."
+
'''Linus:''' "Maybe you're just feeling burned out."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Stroking Vaughn's hand, Emily says in a quiet voice. After her fiance left her, determined to defeat the monster, she often stayed up at night, praying for his safety. Feeling a rush of guilt and gratefulness, Vaughn impulsively kisses her on the cheek. Emily blushes and pushes off from Vaughn's embrace."''
+
'''Aganzo:''' "Maybe. Or maybe this is just me. I don't think I've ever had passion for anything."
  
'''Emily:''' "Wh-why did you do that? Someone could've seen us. You fool!"
+
'''Linus:''' "Passion! Just hearing the word excites me. Travelling Arad once was my passion. *Sigh...* The Metastasis has killed countless people. I don't thin it's stupid that you're trying to stop it. Actually I admire you. If you don't do it, someone else has to. Because of people like you, I could choose the hammer over the sword."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Why not? We're engaged. Ah, I can't wait to marry you!"
+
'''Aganzo:''' "Stop. You're not drunk already, are you? If you're not going to stop, I'm leaving."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Emily, her face red from embarrassment, tries to cover his mouth with her hand, but she's not strong enough to stop the excited boy."''
+
'''Linus:''' "Geez, man. Do you think it's easy for me to say such embarrassing things? Many things have happened around here lately, and they just got me thinking. I was just trying to be honest with you."
  
'''Emily:''' "Stop it! Someone could hear you!"
+
'''Aganzo:''' "Man, you're gotten old and soft."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "I want to marry you!"
+
'''Linus:''' "So have you. Time doesn't discriminate."
  
'''Emily:''' "..."
+
'''Aganzo:''' "Right. A lot of time has passed since we first met. Who's that [[Toby|goblin]] hovering around over there? Do you know him?"
  
'''Vaughn:''' "...Oh. I'm sorry. I'll keep my mouth shut. I'm just so happy. Please forgive me."
+
'''Linus:''' "Huh? Man, he came back. I told him not to come back because goblins and humans don't mix."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn grovels. This lovely girl can be scary when she's angry."''
+
'''Aganzo:''' "The world has changed, more so than you and I think. Like that young goblin, some of the things that used to be serious in our time no longer matter."
  
'''Emily:''' "Keep doing that, and I won't see you for a month."
+
'''Linus:''' "You're right. Even I've noticed that the world is changing, and this place is far away from civilization. I can't imagine how rapidly things must be changing in big cities. Say, how'd you like to make an acquaintance with a goblin, in celebration of the coming of a new era?"
  
'''Vaughn:''' "All right, I'll stop."
+
'''Aganzo:''' "I have to go. I'm happy to be friends with someone who's friends with a goblin."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn looks crestfallen. Emily glares at him for a second, and then bursts into laughter as she holds his arm and rests her head on his shoulder."''
+
'''Linus:''' "Hmph, don't treat me as if I'm a child excited to introduce one friend to another. And don't thin you won either."
  
'''Emily:''' "By the way, how was that monster? I heard it killed a lot of people. Was it so strong?"
+
'''Toby:''' "Linus, want to play Rock-paper-scissors with me?"
  
'''Vaughn:''' "It was. I almost died trying to kill it."
+
'''Aganzo:''' "*Chuckle*"
  
'''Emily:''' "You fool, I told you not to go."
+
'''Linus:''' "...You're not helping, kiddo."
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
<hr>
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Old Friend (Season 3)
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
{{RemovedContent}}
 +
'''Linus:''' "Wow, who's this? What a pleasant surprise!"
  
'''Vaughn:''' "I know, I know. But I've learned a lot and seen a lot. That Apostle had incredible powers. If we can understand what it's capable of, it'll help our country immensely."
+
'''Aganzo:''' "Linus? I didn't know you were on Behemoth."
  
'''Emily:''' "You said it was a scary monster."
+
'''Linus:''' "I didn't know you were here either. The Adventurer arrived a while ago, followed by the Imperial Knights, and now you. Has something serious happened?"
  
'''Vaughn:''' It was as powerful as it was scary. Its influence on people's minds was so great that even the most powerful court mage couldn't resist it. Now, think of it this way. If we can employ its power to our advantage, our country will become stronger than anyone else's. No enemy will dare threaten our country, and we'll have the power to stop dragons and other monsters with the least amount of effort."
+
'''Aganzo:''' "I don't know yet. It could be just Vaughn blowing things out of proportion. What are you doing here? Are you playing blacksmith because of what happened a long time ago? Well, I'm really in no position to judge you. But really, why are you here?"
  
'''Emily:''' "But the powers of monsters are evil."
+
'''Linus:''' "If I start talking about myself, we'll end up staying up all night, drinking. I came here because of Cinda. I've been learning smithing from him. The Great Metastasis made him think. I guess he was worried that he had no one to pass down his skill. He asked if I wanted to be his apprentice. I've decided to become a blacksmith, and I'm lucky to have such a great teacher. He told me not to call him Master, though. Anyway, he wanted me to come here, so I followed him. I also wanted to see some minerals unique to this place."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "No, monsters are evil. Their powers can be used for good purposes at the hands of the right people, just like swords."
+
'''Aganzo:''' "I see."
  
'''Emily:''' "I still think that's a dangerous idea. You already have the Ghost Arm to deal with. Let other people handle things like that. If you get hurt... Oh, I think I'm going to cry again."
+
'''Linus:''' "Enough about me. How have you been? The Magathas are the only source of news from Arad, and they don't come here often."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Emily's eyes get misty. Panicked, Vaughn waves his hands and fidgets on his seat."''
+
'''Aganzo:''' "Things are not good in Arad."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Please don't. I don't know what to do when you cry."
+
'''Linus:''' "...I see."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Emily wipes off the tears and tries to get her mind off the worries that never seem disappear. She looks up at Vaughn pleadingly."''
+
'''Aganzo:''' "Linus, I don't know how valuable those unique minerals are, but don't you want to return to Arad?"
  
'''Emily:''' "Then stop making me worried, okay?"
+
'''Linus:''' "This is not a bad place to live. It's filled with mysterious minerals and the scenery changes every minute. And I like listening to the GBL doctrines. They teach me new things."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Okay, I will."
+
'''Aganzo:''' "Linus, you've changed a lot."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn nods reluctantly."''
+
'''Linus:''' "I have. Since the Great Metastasis."
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Young Imperial Knight: Chapter 3
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Book:''' ''"It's a sunny day in spring. The breeze is warm and the air is redolent of flowers. The fields are green and the sky is blue. People are enjoying a beautiful day everywhere except in the small city: thick plumes of acrid smoke are rising from somewhere there."''
 
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Emily! Emily!"
+
'''Aganzo:''' "..."
  
'''Garrison Soldier:''' "You can't go in there! You're going to die!"
+
'''Linus:''' "I'm just worried that you're dwelling on the past."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Get off me, damn it! My fiancee is inside there!"
+
'''Aganzo:''' "You're not the first one to tell me that."
  
'''Garrison Soldier:''' "Firefighting Mages are on their way. Just... Ugh!"
+
'''Linus:''' "And I won't be the last."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn shakes off the garrison soldiers and rushes into the mansion. He pushes in through the crowd of coughing and running people. He doesn't see the familiar chestnut brown hair of his fiancee. Vaughn runs this way and that way, not caring if his clothes catch fire or get sooty.''
+
'''Aganzo:''' "I have nothing to say about that."
  
''Before their wedding, Emily decided to go on a vacation to a friend's summerhouse. Emily wanted to introduce Vaughn to her friends, so Vaughn came on horseback as soon as he finished his training. On his way to this place, he was worried about embarrassing his fiancee. He didn't have to. Emily and her friends were trapped in fire. Vaughn has a reputation for cool-headedness among his peers and seniors in the Blade Master community, but when he heard Emily was still inside the burning house, he froze, his mind blank.''
+
'''Linus:''' "I see."
  
''He frantically searches inside the mansion until he feels dizzy from the lack of oxygen and almost falls. Vaughn shakes his head, draws his sword, and shouts as he swings his word in the air. Vaughn shakes his head, draws his sword, and shouts as he swings his sword in the air. The wind from his sword pushes back the smoke and breaks the window. Vaughn leans over the window and breathes deeply, trying to lower his heart rate."''
+
'''Aganzo:''' "I'd better leave. I have someone waiting for me."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "(I was told Emily was resting alone after lunch. But where? The maid said she wasn't in her room. Then...)"
+
'''Linus:''' "All right. How long are you going to be here? When you're done with your business, you should come by. I've got some good liquor that I'd love to share with you and your friends."
 +
 
 +
'''Aganzo:''' "I will."
 +
 
 +
'''Siran:''' "Are you done talking? Who's this? A friend? Don't worry. I have poor hearing. I couldn't hear what you were talking about. Anyway, what is he doing here?"
 +
 
 +
'''Aganzo:''' "He's a blacksmith. What do you think he's doing?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn thinks about the structure of the mansion he observed from the outside, Emily's personality, and what he heard from the rescuers. He reenters the hallway and starts running. He can run without breathing for a while. This fire is nothing compared to the vicious curse that filled the Screaming Cavern. Vaughn, having reached the other end of the mansion, breaks the heavy door of the study."''
+
'''Siran:''' "Don't snap at me. Why are you angrier now that you've met an old friend? I don't understand you."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "...This!"
+
'''Aganzo:''' "Sometimes it's hard to accept that your friend has changed and there's nothing I can do about it."
  
'''Book:''' ''"The smell is so strong that it instantly paralyzes Vaughn's nose. It's the odor of blood. Trying hard to ignore the foreboding that crawls up his spine, he searches around the study that is as big as a library. Vaughn remembered that it was books that connected him and Emily in the first place. He's hoping his guesswork will pay off."''
+
'''Siran:''' "I've never seen you so worried about someone else. He must be so important to you."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "...!"
+
'''Aganzo:''' "We've been through a lot together. ...I don't know why I'm telling you this. Let's go. Vaughn is waiting."
  
'''Book:''' ''"He finds Emily behind a big hardwood bookshelf. She is not alone. All the bookshelves behind the bookshelf are on the floor, all their books scattered on and around them, indicating a struggle. And two men with their faces covered in black cloth masks are lying on the floor, dead. Emily is lying unconscious behind a garrison soldier who is bleeding from his stomach. Quickly Vaughn holds up Emily. Her pale arm drops as if it belongs to a lifeless marionette. Vaughn gently shakes her, but her body remains limp. She drops a small silver knife from her hand.''
+
'''Siran:''' "All right. You can tell me more over a drink later. He looks like he likes drinking, too. Didn't he offer you some good liquor by chance?"
  
''Vaughn checks the garrison soldier. Emily is breathing, though shallowly, but this guy is really dead. He must have found Emily and died protecting her from the assassins. Vaughn closes the garrison soldier's eyes and prays for him. He then holds Emily in his arms and throws himself through the window out to the other side, barely avoiding the blazing fire that has reached the inside the study."''
+
'''Aganzo:''' "Are you sure you didn't hear us?"
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
 +
 +
===Talking about Kartel===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:Talking about Kartel Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Young Imperial Knight: Chapter 4
+
|Title=Talking about Kartel: Chapter 1
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''Book:''' ''"A few years went by. Vaughn has just returned from the northern expedition. He's on his knees, reporting to the emperor."''
+
'''Book:''' "''The Kartel we know now is different from the Kartel when it was first formed. Back then, the Kartel was just a ragtag bunch of hotheads looking for trouble. They indulged in excessive drinking and violence, a deadly combination that always led to drunken shootouts. It's been only ten years since the word Kartel was recognized as the name for these outlaws, but the history of the Kartel dates back further.''
  
'''Vaughn:''' "I have subjugated the barbarians in the north as you commanded. They'll never dare intrude our territory. Their leader..."
+
''Some twenty years ago, two young men, [[Enzo Sipo]] and [[Sandstorm Varracht]], led Edon's Brotherhood together. They were the most famous gunslingers of the Lawless District, and because they kept the streets peaceful, the residents didn't mind having them around. Of course, they were ruthless to their enemies, and this gentlemanly yet cold-hearted killer image that they established was attractive to friend and foe alike.''
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "How many soldiers did we lose this time?"
+
''But it wasn't just their charisma as individuals that inspired the organization of the Kartel. All outlaws live by their own rules and refused to be tied down by the constraints of society. They often exist in small groups, but they can never make an army that requires myriad rules for its management. How did these outlaws who are individualists to the core gather forces and grow so big as a group? How did they turn themselves into a well-organized army? To understand them, we first have to think about the deep-seated sense of inferiority and anger within the people of Wespeace, also known as the Lawless District.''
  
'''Vaughn:''' "A hundred twenty-six, Your Majesty, but the enemy lost--"
+
''The Lawless District is a barren land once used as a prisoner camp. For a hundred years, the descendants of the prisoners were forced to remain in the land by the government. When the residents were finally freed from the sins of their fathers and allowed to move anywhere they wanted, outside society refused to take them in. In the eyes of the society, they remained synonymous with failure.''
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "That's too many, don't you think?"
+
''That's why the story of Brigadier General [[Jackter Elrox]], born in the Lawless District and rising through the ranks in the Empyrean Royal army after he moved to the Imperial Capital, drew so much attention. Regarding the most successful case of Archpriest Beldron's recruitment out of the Lawless District, Elrox said this in an interview:''
 +
''"...There are people who crossed the sea, but when their accent and mannerism give them away, the discrimination begins and they became more miserable than they were when they left the Lawless District. They return, and their stories discourage the rest from getting out to the larger world."''
  
'''Book:''' ''"The emperor's interrogation was disconcerting. There were fatalities, sure, but the number wasn't so high compared to the enemy's. But the emperor is right. A loss is a loss. Vaughn lowers his head and answers."''
+
''That became an endless cycle, and the residents of the Lawless District developed a yearning and resentment toward the society outside their world. The government initiated policies to embrace the residents, but they were still in its infancy. The residents of the Lawless District drank and fought to temporarily forget their anger and frustration. After days and years of meaningless destruction and hopelessness, a question came to their minds all of a sudden: "Why does it have to be us?"''  
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Yes, Your Majesty."
+
''That was a valid question on their end, but it was the prelude to disaster for us.''"
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Talking about Kartel: Chapter 2
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book:''' ''"Now, let's move our focus back to Edon's Brotherhood. Twenty years ago, the Kartel didn't exist. Instead, a myriad of big and small gangs fought and killed each other in turf wars. No one dared united them into one group.''
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "That's not good. If we keep losing so many soldiers each time we fight, then one day we'll run out of soldiers to protect our empire. My queen can't sleep at night, worried that one day the barbarians would come and ax her to death."
+
''Meanwhile, the question that crossed someone's mind became a movement and spread throughout the entire district. Some were tired of endless violence. Some wanted to grow in power. Some just wanted a reason to fight. Everyone had a different goal, but they rose in arms together. It was  a chaotic time. Intense battles were fought everywhere in the district. Those who couldn't fight crossed the sea because being alive and discriminated was better than being dead, but they weren't many.''
  
'''Vaughn:''' "That will never happen, Your Majesty. I'll do everything--"
+
''Everyone in the district, regardless of their gender and age, had deep-seated anger that they exploded at each other. Edon's Brotherhood had been absorbing weaker, smaller organizations that failed to survive the competition. Brigadier General reminisced about those times, shared the following.''
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "All right, I'll trust you. For now. I've got no one else to trust, anyway."
+
''"While other gangs and organizations advocated great causes, Edon's Brotherhood carried the banner for romance. It was a smart strategy. It helped them evade persecution by the Wespeace Army that regarded Edon's Brotherhood as a group of posers. Outlaws, tired of the great causes of other organizations, sought refuge in Edon's Brotherhood because it let them be the carefree outlaws they were. Also, gangs that were too weak to survive the competition wanted to ally with Edon's Brotherhood. Edon's Brotherhood continued to grow, and by the time other organizations realized the threat that it posed, it was too late."''
  
'''Vaughn:''' "..."
+
''The leader Sipo was a great tactician. Varracht, who claimed to be the second-in-command, was high-handed, but had charismatic leadership. These two worked together for a long time. In the beginning, Sipo and Varracht wanted the same thing: a romantic, carefree life. But as their organization grew, their goals had to change, and with the absorption of Rangelus's Guerillas, Sipo began entertaining the idea of dominating the whole country. Rangelus, leader of the Guerillas, became Sipo's right-hand man, promptly pushing aside Varracht, a romantist to the core, and Sipo let that happen. He abandoned his friend of ten years. Varracht continued to support Sipo and tried to turn Edon's Brotherhood back to what it used to be, but he couldn't stop the change of the tide. In the end, he left the organization by himself."''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Talking about Kartel: Chapter 3
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book:''' ''"To prevent your confusion, I avoided using the word, Kartel. Kartel is a variation of cartel whose dictionary definition is "a written agreement between belligerent groups." Edon's Brotherhood led by Sipo has formed an outlaw cartel with various other organizations. After Varracht's withdrawal, Edon's Brotherhood expanded rapidly, until there was no other cartel left standing in the Lawless District. Ironically, the end of Varracht's involvement in Edon's Brotherhood, which he created with Sipo, marked the beginning of the Kartel.''
  
'''Book:''' ''"Emperor Leon interrupt Vaughn midsentence. Stumped, Vaughn further lowers his head."''
+
''For the next ten years, the Kartel has transformed from a gang of outlaws into a well-trained army. equipped with advanced military technology. Of course, the Kartel cannot compete with Empyrean's scientific advancement led by the Seven Shards or with the time-tested structure and strategic strength of the Empyrean Royal Army, but nevertheless the outlaw army has continued to grow and already has a number of victories against us under its belt.''
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Ah, that reminds me... How's your wife? Oh, wait. I forgot you're not married yet. I'm sorry."
+
''Some intellectuals have voiced their concerns about the Kartel, but a majority of the general populace is being more optimistic, believing that the Kartel will die out naturally once it runs out of resources. Such belief has a point, given the disadvantageous environment of the Lawless District. Also it doesn't bode well for the Kartel that its growing violence has caused it to fall out of favor with the residents of the district. Now, can we really count on the Lawless District's "self-purification ability?"''
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Not at all, Your Majesty. Thank you for your concern. She's doing better now. Thank you for your concern. At least now she knows who I am and can eat by herself."
+
''[[Doctor Gizel Logan]], Empyrean's greatest scientist and a member of the Seven Shards, has visited the Lawless District several times for his research on the Galaha Desert. His answer to my question about the Kartel's longevity was:''
  
'''Book:''' ''"Emily survived the fire, all thanks to the garrison soldier who died fighting for her, but she bled a lot. The arsonists were some adventurers who were not happy with the Empire. When Emily woke up form a days-long coma, she screamed at every man she saw and threw things at them. Vaughn wasn't an exception. Emily's parents suggested breaking off the engagement for Vaughn's sake, but Vaughn didn't want any other woman as his wife.''
+
''"It's true the Kartel has great influence over Wespeace Island, but the locals said it'd been suffering from internal disputes and it's clearly evident, even to a stranger like me. I don't doubt the scarcity of supplies is a major issue. Belonging to an organization means you have to follow rules whether you like it or not, but outlaws don't have the discipline or want to live by other people's rules. The Kartel will never last long."''
  
''But he couldn't marry her. She'd been kept inside her house to protect the honor of her family. And the Empire's marital law requires both parties to enter into marriage voluntarily. Emily barely remembered her name, let alone the concept of marriage."''
+
''Brigadier General Elrox, with whom I've had multiple interviews in preparation for this book, has a different opinion.''
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "I'm sorry that I had to drag you away from your ill fiancee because of national matters."
+
''"The Kartels have survived the harsh conditions of the Lawless District. They're as resilient as they're vengeful. All of them are angry at the social structure of Empyrean, and their aggression has been further aggravated by the rules set down by their organization. But Sipo is good at distracting his soldiers from directing their anger at him. Once he conquers Wespeace, he'll point his gun at the outside world. And there will be blood. We need to prepare for that time."''
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Not at all. It's my duty to protect you and my country against any threats. You've put so much trust in me, and I'd like to repay you every chance I get."
+
''It wouldn't be the first time the Lawless District revolted against the rest of society, but all its attempts at rebellion were frustrated more quickly than they started because of its perpetual lack of supplies. The optimistic point of view on the Kartel is valid, but I have to agree with the pessimists that the Kartel is growing too quickly. Maybe I'm worry too much, but I'm a firm believer that prevention is better than cure. Maybe it's time we take the threat of the Kartel seriously."''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Thank you for saying that, but don't you want to have children and settle down now? You've been engaged for a long time. Most people at your age have a couple of children already."
+
===Young Imperial Knight===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:Young Imperial Knight Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Young Imperial Knight: Chapter 1
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn Walshuted, having defeated the evil monster Sirocco that terrorized all of Arad, just returned home and was bombarded with attention. The people of the Empire praised and blessed the young Blade Master who accomplished something that all the others couldn't. Women threw flower petals at the boy hero, and men applauded as he passed by. Children followed Vaughn in procession, shouting excitedly. The sounds of trumpets and shouts echoed in the air. Vaughn, dazed from all the attention, entered the palace and knelt before the emperor."''
  
'''Vaughn:''' "...I don't have a family plan, just yet."
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Vaughn Walshuted reporting his return, Your Majesty."
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "I see. Well, that's great!"
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Welcome back, and congratulations on your great accomplishment. You're young, but so strong. Even the most skilled court mage lost his life to that heinous monster Sirocco."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Pardon?"
+
'''Vaughn:''' "I couldn't have done it alone. If it weren't for the other Blade Masters who were there with me, I would also been killed."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn lifts his head, confused, Does the emperor want to select a wife for him? The emperor is one of a few people who knows the situation Vaughn is in with Emily, and he's an emperor. He can select wives for his knights if he wants to. The emperor's face, which has been stiff and emotionless until this point, relaxes into a smile, as if he's figured out what kind of thought was crossing Vaughn's mind."''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn speaks in a firm, clear tone. He could've taken the credit to himself, but he didn't forget to mention the other Blade Masters. The emperor smiled."''
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Don't get me wrong. I said great because, since you don't have a child, you wouldn't feel sorry for young prisoners. I hate people who can't separate business from emotions."
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "You're humble. But today's your day. You can enjoy the compliments you deserve. You're a proud knight of the Empire."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "...Oh. Well, you don't have to worry about that, Your Majesty. Prisoners are prisoners. Even if they're young, they know what they've done is wrong and they must be punished. I don't sympathize with criminals."
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Pardon? Um, I'm not a knight."
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "That's why I know you. You're clear-headed. If others were as competent as you were, I wouldn't had to worry about losing a couple of hundred of soldiers. Ah, that is meant to be a compliment. So, let's talk about your precious Emily. Even if she hasn't recovered from the mental trauma, you need to marry. You were about to marry before the accident."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn lowers his head, worried the emperor might get upset at his pointing the mistake. The emperor's smile widens."''
  
'''Vaughn:''' "I'd love to, but Emily is not in a condition to have a wedding. Our marital law requires both parties to enter into marriage voluntarily. I'm not sure if she understands the concept of marriage."
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "You are now. As of this moment, you will serve me and your country as a knight. Come closer and kneel."
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Hm, how many people know about her condition?"
+
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn lifts his head, surprised. He couldn't take the knight training. He was a great swordsman, but he didn't have the backing to get him into the knight apprentice program. But he doesn't have hang-ups about it. He's content practicing his swordsmanship on his own, and he doesn't need the knight title to prove himself. He's already a Blade Master and that's enough for him. Well, that's more than enough, actually, when it comes to swordsmanship. But if the emperor wants to knight him, he's all for it."''
  
'''Vaughn:''' "A handful except the house staff."
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Vaughn Walshuted, do you swear that you will observe chivalry, follow justice, and protect your country and people against any and all threats?"
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "You know, you've been engaged for a long time. People are getting curious as to why the great hero Vaughn Walshuted is not marrying already. They think there's a problem."
+
'''Vaughn:''' "I do."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Emily is the only one I want to marry. And... If I break off the engagement, even Sir Krueger won't be able to stop Emily's family from abjuring her."
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Vaughn Walshuted, I hereby pronounce that you're an honorable knight of the De Los Empire. Do you promise conspicuous gallantry and selfless dedication to your duty to your country?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"The only reason Emily has been allowed to stay in the main family mansion is because she's Baron Walshuted's fiancee. If it weren't for her uncle, Sir Conrad Krueger, Emily's parents would've abjured her before she woke up form the coma. As things stand, Vaughn is the only one in the world who can keep her safe."''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "I do."
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "So I was thinking, maybe I should make you exempt from the law. Your fiancee wanted to marry you before the tragedy happened, didn't she?"
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Vaughn Walshuted, do you swear your fealty to me, Leon Heinrich, the First Knight and the legitimate ruler of the De Los Empire?"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn perks up at the emperor's offer. He'll be able to marry Emily and bring her to his home. The only obstacle was the law, and the emperor is willing to bend the rules for him."''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "I do."
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "You'll still want to keep her from the public eye, so a big wedding is out of the question. Have a small wedding in a remote city and come back. Leave Emily there until she fully recovers. People will want to see your wife, but you can use me and your mission to avoid telling them the truth. *Chuckle*"
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Your loyalty will be rewarded with my trust, and your betrayal with my wrath. Your pledge to me will remain effective until the day you die, and only then you'll be freed from your responsibility. Now lift your head and rise. You're now a knight and baron of the De Los Empire."
  
'''Vaughn:''' "I can't... I can't thank you enough, Your Majesty."
+
'''Claus:''' "...!"
  
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn is choked up with emotion. Pleased, the emperor looks down at him."''
+
'''Book:''' ''"The entire Court stirs. The courtiers gape at the emperor, unable to believe what he just has announced. The emperor doesn't even bat an eye. He's just knighted and baronized someone who is only good at swinging a sword."''
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "You're welcome, and I really have to send you afar on a mission. It's something only you can do."
+
'''Schuman:''' "(Has His Majesty gone insane? I thought Vaughn would only be made baron. He can't knight and baronize a goon with the Ghost Arm!)"
  
'''Vaughn:''' "What is it? I'll do anything you ask."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Even Vaughn is stunned by the emperor's announcement. The only other person who remains calm is Conrad of House Krueger, a prestigious family of warriors."''
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "I'll take you up on that. Now, let's go back to the subject. In order to secure the safety of the Empire, we need strong soldiers. So I've built a [[Vilmark - Area 50|research center]] to strengthen our soldiers. It's hidden in some remote place. I didn't want the nobility to make a fuss about it. Do you know what that means?"
+
'''Conrad:''' "(A baron and knight. The emperor can be mischievous if he wants to be, but he's just made a lot of people angry. Still, Walshuted can hold his own. He's better than any of those corrupt knights.)"
  
'''Vaughn:''' "You want me to watch the perimeters. As you wish. When should I leave for the research center?"
+
'''Book:''' ''"Krueger is the only person who welcomes Vaughn's unexpected knighthood. Vaughn, unaware of the quick, furtive exchanges of gazes behind his back, swears his fealty to the emperor in a firm voice."''
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "I'll let you know later. You need to focus on your wedding for now. Don't get your hopes up about marriage, though. Once you're tied down... Ah, you can figure out the rest on your own. *Chuckle* You must be exhausted. You can leave. I'll keep you updated on the details of your mission."
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Thank you, Your Majesty. I'm now yours to command."
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Young Imperial Knight: Chapter 2
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Vaughn:''' "Emily! Emily!"
  
'''Vaughn:''' "Thank you. I'll leave now."
+
'''Book:''' ''"As soon as he left the Court, Vaughn ran to a quiet garden where a girl was waiting for him. It was difficult to get through so many people that wanted to see the great hero from close range, but he plowed through with determination to see his girl Emily, whom he thought about every day during his long journey. She was waiting for him in their special place. She turned as he approached, calling her name. She was startled at Vaughn's unkempt appearance (from the people grabbing at his hair and clothes as he passed by), but the surprise was quickly replaced with a big, beautiful smile, as she ran to her lover, her skirt bustling and fluttering behind her. Vaughn picked her up and spun with her in his arm. Emily tightened her arms around his neck."''
  
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn leaves the audience chamber. The emperor waves his hand, dismissing the other courtiers. After everyone else leaves, the emperor remains on his throne and thinks for a moment. He then speaks."''
+
'''Emily:''' "Vaughn, you're back! Oh, Vaughn!"
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Can you believe that man? He's still in love with a damaged woman. Stubborn fools like that are only good as cannon fodder. Why do you want him so badly?"
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Yes, I am! I came to see you as soon as I left the palace. Ah, Emily! Something great happened today! Guess what I am now."
  
'''[[Iris|???]]:''' "He knows about the powers of the Apostles better than anyone else in your country, and he admires them. He'll do what you want."
+
'''Emily:''' "You've been knighted, haven't you? *Shriek* Oh, I'm so happy for you! You're so great!"
  
'''Book:''' ''"A woman appears from behind the curtains behind the throne. She's clad in a black robe that casts a dark shadow over her face. She exudes magical power that is incomparable, even to that of the greatest court mage in the empire's history. The emperor turns his head toward the woman."''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn put Emily down. Emily continues to chatter excitedly, but Vaughn looks disappointed."''
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Is he also part of the prophecy?"
+
'''Vaughn:''' "What? Who told you? Gah, I wanted to be the first one to tell you that."
  
'''???:''' "Yes. Everything is for the safety of the Empire and Arad. Vaughn will be your greatest supporter once he learns about your great cause."
+
'''Emily:''' "Everyone was talking about it. Even Father said you were good enough to be knighted. So did Uncle Conrad!"
  
'''Emperor Leon:''' "He doesn't know what is necessary for the world to develop. Do you think we can change him?"
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Sir Conrad von Krueger?"
  
'''???:''' "I do. Everything is as prophesied."
+
'''Emily:''' "Yes. Uncle Conrad said you'd be made viscount, too. This is great! Now Mother can't object to our marriage anymore!"
  
'''Book:''' ''"The woman in the black robe smiles at Emperor Leon as if to reassure him."''  
+
'''Book:''' ''"Looking down at Emily in his arms, Vaughn grins."''
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
|}
 
  
===Forest of No Return===
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Viscount? I'm a baron now. A baron!"
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|[[File:Forest of No Return Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Forest of No Return
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Book:''' ''The beautiful forest [[Grand Flores]] was inhabited by multiple races. Among them are the Elves, a race of superior intelligence that had existed since the beginning of [[Arad]], and the Taus, a race of giants who were as strong as they were innocent and wise.''
 
  
''All the habitants of the forest coexisted peacefully, protecting the Great Pentacles created by Myre. Sometimes they had uninvited guests, but their forest made sure that those guests left without causing too much trouble.''
+
'''Emily:''' "...Really? Really?! Baron Walshuted! That sounds perfect!"
  
''It was a peaceful day as usual. [[Umtara]], the king of the Taus and all beasts, was searching for someone.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Unable to contain her happiness, Emily starts jumping with her hands around his arm. Vaughn also jumps, laughing. It seems even the sun is congratulating these two lovers. It takes a while for the couple of young lovers to calm down, but they keep their hands linked together as they walk to a tree and sit under the shade."''
  
'''Umtara:''' "There you are. I've been looking for you."
+
'''Emily:''' "I was worried."
  
'''Book:''' ''Umtara was looking for an elder of the Elves. The Elves could sense each other through their magical connection, but Umtara, incapable of magic like everyone else in his tribe, had to do legwork to find her.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Stroking Vaughn's hand, Emily says in a quiet voice. After her fiance left her, determined to defeat the monster, she often stayed up at night, praying for his safety. Feeling a rush of guilt and gratefulness, Vaughn impulsively kisses her on the cheek. Emily blushes and pushes off from Vaughn's embrace."''
  
'''[[Seria]]:''' "Good day, Umtara."
+
'''Emily:''' "Wh-why did you do that? Someone could've seen us. You fool!"
  
'''Elder:''' "Long time, no see, Beast Tau King. What can I do for you?"
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Why not? We're engaged. Ah, I can't wait to marry you!"
  
'''Umtara:''' "Um, I came to consult you about some concern of mine."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Emily, her face red from embarrassment, tries to cover his mouth with her hand, but she's not strong enough to stop the excited boy."''
  
'''Book:''' ''The Tau usually speaks his mind without preamble, but today there's hesitation in his voice. The tactful Elf girl who is with the Elder quickly stands up.''
+
'''Emily:''' "Stop it! Someone could hear you!"
  
'''Seria:''' "Oh, I almost forgot that I have books to return to the library. Excuse me, Elder. Beast King."
+
'''Vaughn:''' "I want to marry you!"
  
'''Umtara:''' "I'm sorry I interrupted you."
+
'''Emily:''' "..."
  
'''Seria:''' "Not at all. Enjoy your conversation."
+
'''Vaughn:''' "...Oh. I'm sorry. I'll keep my mouth shut. I'm just so happy. Please forgive me."
  
'''Book:''' ''The elder waits until the girl is so far that her keen Elven ears cannot pick up on their conversation.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn grovels. This lovely girl can be scary when she's angry."''
  
'''Elder:''' "So, what is it?"
+
'''Emily:''' "Keep doing that, and I won't see you for a month."
  
'''Umtara:''' "I've been seeing more Human visitors these days. I don't mind the adventurer and traveler kinds, but the people I've been seeing are clad in iron and that doesn't bode well with me."
+
'''Vaughn:''' "All right, I'll stop."
  
'''Elder:''' "I'm aware of that problem. I'll assign more archers and guard the forest."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn looks crestfallen. Emily glares at him for a second, and then bursts into laughter as she holds his arm and rests her head on his shoulder."''
  
'''Umtara:''' "Please do. That'll make our job easy. By the way, do you have any idea what those Humans are?"
+
'''Emily:''' "By the way, how was that monster? I heard it killed a lot of people. Was it so strong?"
  
'''Book:''' ''Umtara sounds wary. He doesn't know why, but his instincts is warning him of a looming danger.''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "It was. I almost died trying to kill it."
  
'''Elder:''' "Soldiers. I think they're here to do some kind of research."
+
'''Emily:''' "You fool, I told you not to go."
  
'''Umtara:''' "They'd better not touch the Great Pentacles."
+
'''Vaughn:''' "I know, I know. But I've learned a lot and seen a lot. That Apostle had incredible powers. If we can understand what it's capable of, it'll help our country immensely."
  
'''Book:''' ''The Great Pentacles around the Grand Flores forest were made by Myre, a Human mage whose selfless act had gained him eternal respect from the Elves and other habitants of the forest.''
+
'''Emily:''' "You said it was a scary monster."
  
''The Elves have been pushed out of their lands by the greedy Humans, and the Great Pentacles are the only thing that keep them safe from the outside world.''
+
'''Vaughn:''' It was as powerful as it was scary. Its influence on people's minds was so great that even the most powerful court mage couldn't resist it. Now, think of it this way. If we can employ its power to our advantage, our country will become stronger than anyone else's. No enemy will dare threaten our country, and we'll have the power to stop dragons and other monsters with the least amount of effort."
  
''Grand Flores isn't the home only for the Elves. This vast ancient forest houses myriad animals and trees, and therefore is a crucial part of the ecosystem of Arad.
+
'''Emily:''' "But the powers of monsters are evil."
  
'''Elder:''' "I don't think they would, unless they're suicidal. There will be worldwide consequences if Myre's pentacles are destroyed."
+
'''Vaughn:''' "No, monsters are evil. Their powers can be used for good purposes at the hands of the right people, just like swords."
  
'''Umtara:''' "I'd really like to believe that, but the Humans always have been looking for opportunities to destroy and plunder our forest. Some of them might try to do anything to satisfy their greed, the hell with the consequences."
+
'''Emily:''' "I still think that's a dangerous idea. You already have the Ghost Arm to deal with. Let other people handle things like that. If you get hurt... Oh, I think I'm going to cry again."
  
'''Elder:''' "That's why we've stayed vigilant. This forest has us Elves and you Taus, the strongest of us all. Nothing bad can happen to it as long as we work together to protect it."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Emily's eyes get misty. Panicked, Vaughn waves his hands and fidgets on his seat."''
  
'''Umtara:''' "I hope you're right. I just can't seem to shake off this bad feeling... Ah, forget it. I'm only embarrassing myself by talking about intuitions in front of an Elf."
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Please don't. I don't know what to do when you cry."
  
'''Book:''' ''Umtara stands up and hefts his greatax, which takes several Humans or even Elves to lift it off the ground. The Elf Elder admires his incredible strength.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Emily wipes off the tears and tries to get her mind off the worries that never seem disappear. She looks up at Vaughn pleadingly."''
  
'''Umtara:''' "Then I'd better go look around the edges of the forest, in case there are more suspicious people than those soldiers."
+
'''Emily:''' "Then stop making me worried, okay?"
  
'''Elder:''' "Then you'll be gone for a while. I'll pray for your safe return."
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Okay, I will."
  
'''Umtara:''' "Thank you. See you later."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn nods reluctantly."''
 
 
'''Book:''' ''The Elf Elder watches Umtara's hulking frame disappear into the trees. This quiet forest is thickly wooded with trees that are bigger and taller than the king of the Taus. Whatever the Humans are up to, they cannot destroy this forest as long as the Elves and the Taus exist.''
 
 
 
''The Humans, however, are the most unpredictable sort. Even with the Elf Elder's wisdom and experience, it's almost impossible to predict what they will do.''
 
 
 
''Young Elves think they must go to war with Humans, but they're too inexperienced and proud to see the fact that the Humans are the mainstream of Arad. They can overwhelm the Elves by sheer force of numbers.''
 
 
 
''The Elf Elder hopes that the Humans will be able to have a better outlook, that they will become at least smart enough to see the future more clearly, like Myre who sacrificed himself for the peaceful coexistence of all races.''
 
 
 
''This Grand Flores must be protected not just for its habitants, but also for Arad. The Elf Elder hates to even imagine what will follow the destruction of the Great Pentacles.''
 
 
 
''Forests, once destroyed, can never be restored to their original beauty. The Elf Elder prays that Umtara's worries will not come true for the sake of Grand Flores and the rest of Arad.''
 
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
|}
 
 
===Black Crusade Report===
 
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|[[File:Black Crusade Report Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Black Crusade Report
+
|Title=Young Imperial Knight: Chapter 3
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
''This Document is confidential and accessible only by those approved by the faithful [[Grandis Gracia|representative]] of Remidia Kathedra. No part of this Document may be reproduced, distributed, or transmitted in any form or by any means. Failure to comply with these standards is grounds for expulsion and punishment, and violators may be detained for an indefinite period. The following content must be preserved without omission or modification. Annex notes may be added if they can be supported by credible proof.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"It's a sunny day in spring. The breeze is warm and the air is redolent of flowers. The fields are green and the sky is blue. People are enjoying a beautiful day everywhere except in the small city: thick plumes of acrid smoke are rising from somewhere there."''
  
''The Anti-Ozma War, also known as the [[Black Crusade]], was fought by the holy priests with [[Michael of the Holy Eye]] in the lead, to save every life in Arad from [[Ozma]]. The war cost numerous lives, but it was meaningful in that it helped clear the world of the Apostle and his army of Imposters.''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Emily! Emily!"
  
''The Priests who were instrumental in the victory of the war were made saints. Their leader [[Michael of the Holy Eye]] was made a patron god so he could inspire bravery in the followers of God, but the decision was only made to prevent confusion among his followers. (Refer to Material 1.)''
+
'''Garrison Soldier:''' "You can't go in there! You're going to die!"
  
''Dear God, please guide us! Michael, believed to be one of the most faithful, wisest servants of God, was in fact a demon who led many of his followers astray. Michael was a follower of Satan. He used God's name to deceive and corrupt us. The wisdom that we thought he had was mere trickery he used to entrap us. We must pray and repent. We must be ashamed of our foolishness and praise God's mysterious ways.  No one knew the truth until that evil Michael revealed his true colors, and when he did, all of us were devastated. (Refer to Material 2 and 3 for the proof of Michael's identity as an Apostle.)''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Get off me, damn it! My fiancee is inside there!"
  
''Magar Rosenbach, the Archpriest of the Priest Order and a great Crusader, had to officiate Michael's inauguration ceremony with grim determination. (For the reason of his uncancelled inauguration, refer to Material 4.) Magar Rosenbach, however, decided that this report be opened to public when Arad is finally at peace, so that the truth can be told to His followers with minimal damage. Everyone who reads this report, regardless of era, must do their best to honor Magar Rosenbach's wish.''
+
'''Garrison Soldier:''' "Firefighting Mages are on their way. Just... Ugh!"
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
|}
 
  
===Taybers's Light===
+
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn shakes off the garrison soldiers and rushes into the mansion. He pushes in through the crowd of coughing and running people. He doesn't see the familiar chestnut brown hair of his fiancee. Vaughn runs this way and that way, not caring if his clothes catch fire or get sooty.''
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|[[File:Taybers's Light Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Taybers's Light
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Book:''' ''"The golden planet Taybers was filled with vivid colors. Jewels of all imaginable colors were as common as rocks, and trees with giant rocks in the center of their trunks traveled through the sky, following their sun. There was no concept of season, and day and night were one. Everyone, when they were tired, slept in the shades cast by the trees in the sky, and their wings tucked under them, and ate ripe fruits when they were hungry. Children flapped their dainty wings and played in the golden water of the tranquil sea. Young men raced against each other against the strong winds for the biggest tree that they could find. But none of them were as fast as the Highest One.''
 
  
''The Highest One was the greatest of all. He soared through the sky despite the chill that froze everything, and fell asleep listening to the lullaby the stars sang for him. Countless men fell in their attempts to follow him. More men were blinded by the sharp feathers of the Highest One. He could see the farthest. He could see the future beyond the starlight. He drank the water of the Light Spring. He glowed more brightly than the golden planet itself. People called him the Sun in the Sea. Everyone loved his song and his beautiful wings.''
+
''Before their wedding, Emily decided to go on a vacation to a friend's summerhouse. Emily wanted to introduce Vaughn to her friends, so Vaughn came on horseback as soon as he finished his training. On his way to this place, he was worried about embarrassing his fiancee. He didn't have to. Emily and her friends were trapped in fire. Vaughn has a reputation for cool-headedness among his peers and seniors in the Blade Master community, but when he heard Emily was still inside the burning house, he froze, his mind blank.''
  
''Then purple rain began, tainting the beautiful world with its ugly color. The rain tasted bitter and it turned every fruit it touched bitter and sour. Angry waves rolled up from the golden sea. The yellow plains cracked and cleaved. Something was wrong. Lupsong, Mother of Blue Fire, summoned the Highest One and asked him to investigate the strange phenomenon. The Highest One flapped his wings and reached the red sky at once. He discovered a fragment of some sort that flickered ominously among the stars. That strange fragment was heading in the direction of his home. Without hesitation, he headed for the fragment.''
+
''He frantically searches inside the mansion until he feels dizzy from the lack of oxygen and almost falls. Vaughn shakes his head, draws his sword, and shouts as he swings his word in the air. Vaughn shakes his head, draws his sword, and shouts as he swings his sword in the air. The wind from his sword pushes back the smoke and breaks the window. Vaughn leans over the window and breathes deeply, trying to lower his heart rate."''
  
''At first he thought it was a meteor that needed to be destroyed. But the closer he got, the more convinced he was that something sentient inside the dark, nasty fragment was looking at him. He changed his course and returned to Lupsong.''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "(I was told Emily was resting alone after lunch. But where? The maid said she wasn't in her room. Then...)"
  
''"That dark fragment is dangerous. I'll go get rid of it. If I don't return, then I want everyone to evacuate."''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn thinks about the structure of the mansion he observed from the outside, Emily's personality, and what he heard from the rescuers. He reenters the hallway and starts running. He can run without breathing for a while. This fire is nothing compared to the vicious curse that filled the Screaming Cavern. Vaughn, having reached the other end of the mansion, breaks the heavy door of the study."''
  
''Lupsong tried to stop him, but he was adamant. Everyone wept as they bid farewell to the brave man. A day went by. Two days went by. Three, and four days went by. On the fifth day, Lupsong unfolded her wings.''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "...This!"
  
''"Children, let's fly. [[Isis-frey]], who can soar higher, see farther, and is more powerful than anyone else, is in need of our help."''
+
'''Book:''' ''"The smell is so strong that it instantly paralyzes Vaughn's nose. It's the odor of blood. Trying hard to ignore the foreboding that crawls up his spine, he searches around the study that is as big as a library. Vaughn remembered that it was books that connected him and Emily in the first place. He's hoping his guesswork will pay off."''
  
''But he was too far away. Slenikron, who had the strongest beak of all, was so tired from the long flight that he lost all his feathers. (Reaver Rossol picked up the feathers and used them to adorn his tail. It's believed Rossol keeps himself inside the Cave of the Night in fear of Slenikron.) Those who flew too high had their wings pierced by icicles that were sharper than a razor, or they fell, their wings too frozen to move. Red Leg Arketo-frekses even had his wings tear from his shoulders and fell into the sea. Arketo-frekses hit his head as he landed on a small rocky island on the sea, but he survived. The imprint of his head still remains on the island to this day.''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "...!"
  
''Lupsong, having realized that she could not get to Isis-frey, let along help him, wept and sang her grief. Everyone else joined her and watched the dark fragment that was visible behind the clouds. Suddenly the air in front of us rumbled, and then the fragment disappeared as if sucked into the rumbling air. Soon the purple rain stopped, but Isis-frey never returned. The people of Taybers are still waiting for the return of the Highest One, believing he will repel the sadness that fills the world and  bring back happiness with him.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"He finds Emily behind a big hardwood bookshelf. She is not alone. All the bookshelves behind the bookshelf are on the floor, all their books scattered on and around them, indicating a struggle. And two men with their faces covered in black cloth masks are lying on the floor, dead. Emily is lying unconscious behind a garrison soldier who is bleeding from his stomach. Quickly Vaughn holds up Emily. Her pale arm drops as if it belongs to a lifeless marionette. Vaughn gently shakes her, but her body remains limp. She drops a small silver knife from her hand.''
 +
 
 +
''Vaughn checks the garrison soldier. Emily is breathing, though shallowly, but this guy is really dead. He must have found Emily and died protecting her from the assassins. Vaughn closes the garrison soldier's eyes and prays for him. He then holds Emily in his arms and throws himself through the window out to the other side, barely avoiding the blazing fire that has reached the inside the study."''
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
|}
 
 
===Unexpressed Sadness===
 
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|[[File:Unexpressed Sadness Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Unexpressed Sadness
+
|Title=Young Imperial Knight: Chapter 4
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''Book (Woo):''' "''It's been a fortnight since I brought [[Aganzo|him]] with me. I'm glad he's making a fast recovery, but the grim expression on his face worries me. I get anxious whenever he strokes his sword yearningly.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"A few years went by. Vaughn has just returned from the northern expedition. He's on his knees, reporting to the emperor."''
 +
 
 +
'''Vaughn:''' "I have subjugated the barbarians in the north as you commanded. They'll never dare intrude our territory. Their leader..."
 +
 
 +
'''Emperor Leon:''' "How many soldiers did we lose this time?"
  
''A part of me is happy to be so close to him, although I'm too shy to look him in the eye. I'm also so sad and depressed that I can't focus on anything. I've been making many mistakes, but if the Master has taken notice, he hasn't told me. I've pretended that I don't care if he cares or not.''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "A hundred twenty-six, Your Majesty, but the enemy lost--"
  
''Every time I catch him looking up at the sky with longing in his eyes, my heart sinks. I hate the couple of birds chirping happily outside the window. He said he'd lost his appetite, so I cooked porridge for him. He barely had a few spoonful of his food. He said he thought he forgot someone and he couldn't remember who it is.''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "That's too many, don't you think?"
  
''My lips quivered, and he demanded I tell him what I know. That made me angry: it was for the first time after a while that he spoke to me. I told him that he forgot someone who died. He wanted to know the name. I lied that I didn't know, but I could never forget the name of the [[Roxy|woman]] I envied so much.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"The emperor's interrogation was disconcerting. There were fatalities, sure, but the number wasn't so high compared to the enemy's. But the emperor is right. A loss is a loss. Vaughn lowers his head and answers."''
  
''If I could move the sun from the western mountain to the east sea, would my wish be granted? If my mother gave birth to me earlier, would I have been able to be with him? I'm helpless when it comes to my feelings for him. I felt as if I'd been abandoned. The moon shone brightly as if mocking of me. If I was abandoned, I could've cried myself to sleep. The night was long and sleepless.''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Yes, Your Majesty."
  
''My room was cold and dark, so I lit a candle. The candlelight swayed and flickered in the wind, breaking my already frayed mind, bringing tears to my eyes. I told the Master that I would leave as soon as the sun comes up. The heartless man curtly bid me farewell, and then asked me the same question that I'd dreaded.''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "That's not good. If we keep losing so many soldiers each time we fight, then one day we'll run out of soldiers to protect our empire. My queen can't sleep at night, worried that one day the barbarians would come and ax her to death."
  
''I hesitated and fidgeted. His penetrating eyes and silenced urged me to answer his question. I realized I was a wildflower that could never take root in a rock who is the Master. Resigned, I told him the name. His face instantly brightened, cutting me deep. If she was so precious to him, he shouldn't have forgotten her in the first place.''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "That will never happen, Your Majesty. I'll do everything--"
 +
 
 +
'''Emperor Leon:''' "All right, I'll trust you. For now. I've got no one else to trust, anyway."
  
''He thanked me and walked away, leaving me with his shadow that grew as he went. I turned and walked the other way, trying to smile away my sadness.''"
+
'''Vaughn:''' "..."
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
|}
 
  
===New Genesis===
+
'''Book:''' ''"Emperor Leon interrupt Vaughn midsentence. Stumped, Vaughn further lowers his head."''
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
+
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Ah, that reminds me... How's your wife? Oh, wait. I forgot you're not married yet. I'm sorry."
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
+
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Not at all, Your Majesty. Thank you for your concern. She's doing better now. Thank you for your concern. At least now she knows who I am and can eat by herself."
|[[File:New Genesis Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=New Genesis
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Book:''' ''"At the end of the world, the Great Will birthed myriad gods. They were one, infinite, omnipotent, and ubiquitous. One day, one of them lamented,''
 
  
''"We are omnipotent, but no one worships us. We can go anywhere we want, but we have no place to call home."
+
'''Book:''' ''"Emily survived the fire, all thanks to the garrison soldier who died fighting for her, but she bled a lot. The arsonists were some adventurers who were not happy with the Empire. When Emily woke up form a days-long coma, she screamed at every man she saw and threw things at them. Vaughn wasn't an exception. Emily's parents suggested breaking off the engagement for Vaughn's sake, but Vaughn didn't want any other woman as his wife.''
''
 
''And the other gods lamented with him. Another opened his mouth and spoke,''  
 
  
''"We could create something that will worship us and build a place that we can call home."''  
+
''But he couldn't marry her. She'd been kept inside her house to protect the honor of her family. And the Empire's marital law requires both parties to enter into marriage voluntarily. Emily barely remembered her name, let alone the concept of marriage."''
  
''And the other gods jumped for joy. The latter [[Crying Eyes Hilder|speaker]] had two faces behind which he hid luminous dew. In a saddened tone, he added,''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "I'm sorry that I had to drag you away from your ill fiancee because of national matters."
  
''"But creation can only follow destruction. Some of us have to sacrifice themselves for the creation of our desires, but who will want to return to the embrace of the Great Will?"''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Not at all. It's my duty to protect you and my country against any threats. You've put so much trust in me, and I'd like to repay you every chance I get."
  
''The other gods sighed in tandem and discussed between them. Soon ten gods were selected and stepped forward. The god who was hiding dew lifted his eyes and examined the ten gods. [[Cain the Fatality|One was afraid of death.]] [[Bakal, the King of Dragons|One breathed fire.]] [[Isis-frey in the Blue Sky|One moved without stepping on the ground.]] [[Kasijas the Conqueror|One had steel soaked in blood.]] [[Sirocco of Intangible|One had hundreds of faces, but none of them were visible.]] [[Ozma of Chaos|One had risen from his grave.]] [[Gangling Lotus|One could hold thousands of weapons at once.]] [[Delezie, Plagued Apostle|One bled dirty blood.]] [[Flame Eater Anton|One was as tall as the world.]] [[Luke the Constructor|One touched the earth without a word.]] [[Michael of the Holy Eye|One could see the truth.]] And last but not least, one knew all secrets.''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Thank you for saying that, but don't you want to have children and settle down now? You've been engaged for a long time. Most people at your age have a couple of children already."
  
''The god with two faces shouted,''  
+
'''Vaughn:''' "...I don't have a family plan, just yet."
  
''"Your sacrifice will be appreciated. Let it be known we will not kill each other, and only a blade that is forged in hardship can penetrate our hearts and send us back to the Great Will. Your sacrifice is true. Your extinction is another's creation. From you, our followers and our home will be created.""''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "I see. Well, that's great!"
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
|}
 
  
===Red Sin===
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Pardon?"
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|[[File:Red Sin Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Red Sin: Chapter 1
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Book:''' ''"The news of the arrival of the Imperial negotiators quickly spread throughout Underfoot. To avoid unnecessary attention, the negotiators brought a small group of guards led by the famous Blade Master Vaughn. The Dark Elves hate the Empire, but they couldn't suppress their curiosity. They spilled out into the street to watch the procession of the negotiators."''
 
  
'''Robato:''' "(Vaughn Walshuted...)"
+
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn lifts his head, confused, Does the emperor want to select a wife for him? The emperor is one of a few people who knows the situation Vaughn is in with Emily, and he's an emperor. He can select wives for his knights if he wants to. The emperor's face, which has been stiff and emotionless until this point, relaxes into a smile, as if he's figured out what kind of thought was crossing Vaughn's mind."''
  
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn was riding on a horse, bringing up the rear of the Imperial noblemen who were waving their hands haughtily at the crowds. Vaughn was everything that a knight should be: young, confident, disciplined. His battered scabbard was in sharp contrast to the new, ornate scabbard of the head negotiator.''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Don't get me wrong. I said great because, since you don't have a child, you wouldn't feel sorry for young prisoners. I hate people who can't separate business from emotions."
  
''Unconsciously, Robato rubbed her Ghost Arm, a dark, twisted arm shackled with heavy metal constraints. She never hated herself for having the Ghost Arm, but she was ashamed that she let it cost many lives. Robato once was a colleague of those proud Imperial Knights. In the Empire where strength is worshiped, having the Ghost Arm isn't disadvantageous as it would be in other states in Arad. Some are even envious of the inhuman power of the Ghost Arm. Robato's life in the Empire was smoother than most citizens. Of course, she had to jump through hoops, like everyone else who was not of the nobility, but she was talented and patient enough to accomplish much more than many. But it didn't take long before she started asking questions. Why is the Empire so obsessed with strength? Why is showing off one's strength more valued than using it to save the weak?''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "...Oh. Well, you don't have to worry about that, Your Majesty. Prisoners are prisoners. Even if they're young, they know what they've done is wrong and they must be punished. I don't sympathize with criminals."
  
''Time went by, but the questions remained unanswered. Robato confided in a few comrades she trusted, but their answers were vague at most. "I can't help someone unless I'm strong." That was the best answer she was given. One time, her knight master gathered Robato and the other members and said:''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "That's why I know you. You're clear-headed. If others were as competent as you were, I wouldn't had to worry about losing a couple of hundred of soldiers. Ah, that is meant to be a compliment. So, let's talk about your precious Emily. Even if she hasn't recovered from the mental trauma, you need to marry. You were about to marry before the accident."
  
''"This Arad is corrupt. Its order is destroyed, its law too slack. It's exploited by those who have a vested interest in other people's misery, and monsters are allowed to rampage. We must save the world by enacting and enforcing strict laws."''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "I'd love to, but Emily is not in a condition to have a wedding. Our marital law requires both parties to enter into marriage voluntarily. I'm not sure if she understands the concept of marriage."
  
''The knight master's assertion instantly wiped out Robato's growing uncertainty. She thought, "We're right. We are right! We are the saviors! We're warriors fighting for a better world!" From then on, her life in the Knights changed. The training was as tough as ever, but Robato didn't complain. The knight master was stern, but treated his members like his own. Their mistakes were forgiven, and their failures were comforted. Under the knight master's command, the knights developed a tight bond. To Robato who lost her parents early, they were her family. She could risk her life for the knights.''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Hm, how many people know about her condition?"
  
''The Empire had a stiff image in and out of its territory. It was almost ironic that its knights enjoyed a carefree, family-like environment. Robato suspected that was what the emperor wanted. The knights are an elite army fighting for the Empire, more specifically its emperor and his family. The tighter their bond, the less likely some of them will betray the others. Robato's doubtful attitude toward the Empire's direction became known and she was summoned by the knight master.''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "A handful except the house staff."
  
''She was ready for a big scolding, but the knight master, who silently glared at the young knight until that moment, grinned. In Robato's opinion, that was a hundred times more effective than a scolding."''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "You know, you've been engaged for a long time. People are getting curious as to why the great hero Vaughn Walshuted is not marrying already. They think there's a problem."
  
'''Knight Master Doter:''' "Neither the Knights nor the Empire is perfect. Neither was His Majesty. He's not a god. Everyone makes mistakes, and that includes you. Personally, I don't think the Empire's pursuit of strength is wrong. We have a large territory, meaning we have many things to protect. It's just that people in high places tend to take things to extremes. When there are too many things to protect, naturally some of the things are left defenseless. I mean, sometimes we're unable to save everyone who needs saving."
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Emily is the only one I want to marry. And... If I break off the engagement, even Sir Krueger won't be able to stop Emily's family from abjuring her."
  
'''Book:''' ''"Since that day, the new Knight Robato practiced harder to save more people than she did yesterday, for the emperor, and for Arad."''
+
'''Book:''' ''"The only reason Emily has been allowed to stay in the main family mansion is because she's Baron Walshuted's fiancee. If it weren't for her uncle, Sir Conrad Krueger, Emily's parents would've abjured her before she woke up form the coma. As things stand, Vaughn is the only one in the world who can keep her safe."''
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Red Sin: Chapter 2
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
'''Book:''' ''"As the even tenor of her life continued, Robato's questions were forgotten like measles in childhood. Robato was ethical, enough to come up with such "boring" questions, but she wasn't squeamish about violence. In fact, she was more aggressive and fearless than anyone else. She always took the lead in fighting. Those who underestimated her strength because of her gender paid for it the hard way. But she never let her superior strength go to her head. She continued to practice hard, and her diligence and righteousness were admired by everyone in the Knights. No one doubted, that with more experience, Robato would be the greatest knight in the Empire.''
 
  
''One day, the knight master summoned Robato. He said the emperor was drafting young knights to form a new unit. The knight master wrote her a letter of recommendation. She left for Vitalon, the City of Gold, the same day. After arriving at the capital city, Robato passed the new knights unit tests with flying color. Elite knights from everywhere in the Empire trained together to push past their physical and mental limits every day. The leader of the unit was the emperor himself. The morale of the young knights soared sky-high.''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "So I was thinking, maybe I should make you exempt from the law. Your fiancee wanted to marry you before the tragedy happened, didn't she?"
  
''Robato remembered the day before her first mission like it was yesterday. She was excited for the opportunity to make herself known to the emperor. As a knight, what else was a greater honor than demonstrating one's ability in front of her master? That night, she couldn't sleep. She thought the bright starlight streaming in through the window was the gods' encouraging message for her. But later she would be disillusioned. She would realize she was wrong to think the biggest honor for a knight was an opportunity to distinguish herself. She would learn that she traded her pledge to the weak for her ambition for success and that she was the emperor's puppet and had the blood of countless innocent people on her hands.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn perks up at the emperor's offer. He'll be able to marry Emily and bring her to his home. The only obstacle was the law, and the emperor is willing to bend the rules for him."''
  
''The mission given to the Knights was simple: raise your sword for the Empire's better future. The knights were powerful warriors. They didn't need to ask their nominal deputy knight master what to do.''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "You'll still want to keep her from the public eye, so a big wedding is out of the question. Have a small wedding in a remote city and come back. Leave Emily there until she fully recovers. People will want to see your wife, but you can use me and your mission to avoid telling them the truth. *Chuckle*"
  
''1) They were to subjugate barbaric invaders and conquer their lands. The Empire could never have enough land. Whether the barbarians really invade the Empire's territory didn't matter.''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "I can't... I can't thank you enough, Your Majesty."
  
''2) They were to eliminate political dissidents and three generations of their families. The empire couldn't afford disorder. Whether their targets were real dissidents didn't matter.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn is choked up with emotion. Pleased, the emperor looks down at him."''
  
''Every nobleman who traveled far to visit their camp on behalf of the emperor told them the same think: "You're the true patriots," and it never failed to boost the morale of the knights. Everyone in the Knights knew not everything they were told to do was ethical, but for a big chariot to move smoothly, rocks must be removed from the road. A little bit of injustice and tragedy were like small scratches on the skin from moving the rocks, or at least they wanted to think so.''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "You're welcome, and I really have to send you afar on a mission. It's something only you can do."
  
''After the end of their long-term expeditionary mission, Robato found herself isolated in the Knights. Her questions about her country had become stronger than her loyalty to it. She wasn't a pacifist or squeamish about killing enemies, but she couldn't agree with most of the things that the Knights did in the name of the Empire. She decided to quit.''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "What is it? I'll do anything you ask."
  
''The deputy master asked her a few questions just for formality's sake, and then asked if she had a place to go. When she said no, he offered his letter of recommendation. He said she could be far away from the Empire, protecting some researchers while they researched.''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "I'll take you up on that. Now, let's go back to the subject. In order to secure the safety of the Empire, we need strong soldiers. So I've built a [[Vilmark - Area 50|research center]] to strengthen our soldiers. It's hidden in some remote place. I didn't want the nobility to make a fuss about it. Do you know what that means?"
  
''What Robato wanted was a chance to change the Empire, not a job. She hesitated for a moment, and then accepted his offer. She thought she could take some time off to regroup and plan her future. She didn't know this decision would change her life."''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "You want me to watch the perimeters. As you wish. When should I leave for the research center?"
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
|Title=Red Sin: Chapter 3
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
}}'''Book:''' ''Robato arrived at a big testing ground surrounded by forests. For someone who spent most of her life practicing her swordsmanship, that place was a completely new world filled with high-tech equipment and flashy gadgets. A researcher who was Robato's age said the testing ground was equipped with the highest technology available in Arad, and her duty was to make sure the technology remained disclosed. Guarding the testing ground and escorting the researchers were like child's play compared to fighting in the battlefield. She felt so at ease, as if she was on a vacation. She had more than enough time to plan her future. In retrospect, Robato enjoyed peace for a fleeting moment. She regretted that she was so absorbed with herself that she didn't care to check what kind of place she was in. She shouldn't have believed that it was simply for security reasons that the testing ground was hidden in a remote woodland.''
 
  
''At a certain point of time, the atmosphere of the testing ground changed. The researchers were no longer allowed to go outside the training ground. Neither were Robato and the other guards. Instead, things came in from the outside. Big wooden containers were let in the training ground multiple times a day. She was told the weeping noises were of animals that were brought in for testing purposes.''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "I'll let you know later. You need to focus on your wedding for now. Don't get your hopes up about marriage, though. Once you're tied down... Ah, you can figure out the rest on your own. *Chuckle* You must be exhausted. You can leave. I'll keep you updated on the details of your mission."
  
''One night, she couldn't sleep. She was walking outside when she took notice of some strange activities that were taking place inside the testing ground. Quietly, she approached. She didn't have permission to enter the restricted area, but she entered anyway, bracing for an accident. And she arrived in a strange place.''
+
'''Vaughn:''' "Thank you. I'll leave now."
  
''There was a big machine that looked different from the other testing equipment she was used to. Shaped like a tangled chain of loops, the machine boomed and shook as if it was about to explode. The researchers around the machine looked nervous, but not because something went wrong. It was because something incredible was about to happen. Instinctively, Robato hid behind a box. The machine boomed and shook for a little longer until the center of the machine glowed, and then from it a blindingly bright light exploded with a gust of wind that pushed everything backward, including the box that Robato was hiding behind.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn leaves the audience chamber. The emperor waves his hand, dismissing the other courtiers. After everyone else leaves, the emperor remains on his throne and thinks for a moment. He then speaks."''
  
''What the hell happened? Confused, Robato looked around and then froze. She saw something that she hadn't seen because of the darkness. There were children. There were adults. All of them were gagged and their arms were red. Robato gasped. She turned toward the machine, praying what she was thinking was wrong. The researchers were looking at a man kneeling at the foot of the machine that was still emitting light. Like the others infected with the Ghost Arm, he had his arm shackled with an unbreakable iron chain, and he was covered with bloody wounds. He couldn't talk with the gag in his mouth, but he didn't need to talk. His eyes showed the anger and hatred that he was feeling. Robato stood up to stop the researchers, but the light from the machine intensified and the whole place was swallowed by ominous light. Robato opened her eyes and couldn't believe what she was seeing. In place of the gagged man, there was a strange creature in chains. Having the dessicated head of a fish with tree roots for a body, it looked so grotesque that Robato wasn't sure if it was even a creature. She remembered the circus magic that she once saw switched things, then shook her head. Her brain couldn't register what her eyes were seeing. She just stood and gaped at the creature. Her heart was racing.''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Can you believe that man? He's still in love with a damaged woman. Stubborn fools like that are only good as cannon fodder. Why do you want him so badly?"
  
''Suddenly someone touched Robato. She turned, panicked. Some female researcher, looking desperate, mouthed a "follow me" to her. She didn't look like she had malicious intent and Robato was too confused to refuse her. She ran after the female researcher. She could hear exclamations, sighs, and muffled screams from behind her, but it was all she could do to pinch her throbbing Ghost Arm. The female researcher, when they safely got out of the facility, warned Robato not to come back again before she went back in. Robato just nodded.''
+
'''[[Iris|???]]:''' "He knows about the powers of the Apostles better than anyone else in your country, and he admires them. He'll do what you want."
  
''She returned to her room, disheartened. She was naive to think that she could change the Empire. The creation of the monster she saw was proof that the empire was truly immoral. What the hell was happening in here? What should I do now?''
+
'''Book:''' ''"A woman appears from behind the curtains behind the throne. She's clad in a black robe that casts a dark shadow over her face. She exudes magical power that is incomparable, even to that of the greatest court mage in the empire's history. The emperor turns his head toward the woman."''
  
''Since that night, everything changed. The face of the monster overlapped with those of the researchers who smiled and said hello to her. She didn't know what to do in a place that she didn't really know, alone. She was still debating what to do, when she was ordered to catch a thief who stole confidential materials. Reluctantly, Robato joined the search team, and when they found the thieves, she froze. All of them were in tatters and malnourished and had the Ghost Arm. As if possessed, the thieving Slayers lunged at the guards. Robato was forced to kill a few of the thieves in self-defense.''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "Is he also part of the prophecy?"
  
''By the time the fight was over, all the other guards in the search team were dead and the Slayers who were alive but on the ground were glaring daggers at her. Robato had to choose. She was ordered to catch them. If she let them go, she'll become a traitor. Since she had the Ghost Arm, the researchers may decide to experiment on her, using that terrifying machine. She was only their enemy because she was a knight of the Empire. Slowly, she approached the Slayers. The image of the grotesque monster kept flashing through her mind. She wasn't afraid of dying, but being turned into that kind of monster was a completely different terror that was hard to overcome.''
+
'''???:''' "Yes. Everything is for the safety of the Empire and Arad. Vaughn will be your greatest supporter once he learns about your great cause."
  
''In the end, Robato chose to follow her heart. She told the Slayers how to get out of the forests, and then took care of the guards that came after the first search team. She didn't kill them, but what she did was enough to make her a traitor. That day she lost her knighthood and became a fugitive. She traveled around Arad, carrying nothing but her sword. She always had to be on guard, even when she was asleep, but she never regretted helping the Slayers escape.''
+
'''Emperor Leon:''' "He doesn't know what is necessary for the world to develop. Do you think we can change him?"
  
''She arrived at Underfoot after her arrest order was lifted quietly. It'd been whispered that the emperor found out about the inhumane experiment that took place in Vilmark and imposed severe punishment to the researchers. The truth was buried in time. Robato stopped reminiscing and watched Vaughn Walshuted ride away on his horse. She heard Vaughn was the most trusted and distinguished warrior of the emperor. How much does he know about his own country? Is it possible he's being used like everyone else in the Empire? Robato couldn't give him advice even if she wanted. All she could do was hope that the admired hero of Arad could change the Empire.''
+
'''???:''' "I do. Everything is as prophesied."
  
''Robato turned and wormed her way out of the crowd. She was going to pray for those whom she killed directly and indirectly. Her heart was heavy from all the sins she had committed.''
+
'''Book:''' ''"The woman in the black robe smiles at Emperor Leon as if to reassure him."''  
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
|}
 
|}
  
===Mischievous Homunculus===
+
===Forest of No Return===
 
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
|[[File:Mischievous Homunculus Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
+
|[[File:Forest of No Return Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
 
{{HiddenTextStart|
|Title=Mischievous Homunculus
+
|Title=Forest of No Return
 
|Width=600
 
|Width=600
 
|Show=none
 
|Show=none
 
}}
 
}}
'''[[Becky]]:''' ""Since ancient times, there was a castle as tall as the sky standing on one end of Pandemonium. The name of the castle was unknown. No one who entered the castle came out alive to tell about it. Because the castle was so tall, people thought it was connected to Heaven where the gods resided. Strong and brave warriors who wanted to meet the gods entered the castle.
+
'''Book:''' ''The beautiful forest [[Grand Flores]] was inhabited by multiple races. Among them are the Elves, a race of superior intelligence that had existed since the beginning of [[Arad]], and the Taus, a race of giants who were as strong as they were innocent and wise.''
  
The castle was infested with strong monsters. The warriors from the outside were strong, but the monsters were stronger. All of the warriors were killed. When no one returned from the castle, people believed those warriors had reached the gods. So warriors continued to enter the castle. One day, a crazy dragon appeared in front of some warriors who were about to enter the castle. 'I'm the owner of this castle! Only I can get to the gods!.' The dragon was big and immensely strong. The warriors couldn't dare challenge it. Snickering, the dragon entered into the castle.
+
''All the habitants of the forest coexisted peacefully, protecting the Great Pentacles created by Myre. Sometimes they had uninvited guests, but their forest made sure that those guests left without causing too much trouble.''
  
The monsters attacked the dragon, but it wiped the floor with them. It defeated the giants, and even the old clown. The dragon was invincible. The dragon reached the highest floor of the castle, which no one else had ever seen. There, it found a beautiful blonde girl. The girl was super strong.
+
''It was a peaceful day as usual. [[Umtara]], the king of the Taus and all beasts, was searching for someone.''
  
The dragon lunged at her, but she swatted it aside like a fly. She swung her fist, and the dragon was flattened. The dragon was a wimp compared to the girl. She's still living in the top floor of the castle. She's the strongest girl in the world, so she'll never let anyone else take her castle. But one day she'll destroy the castle and come out for world domination. Her name is Becky."
+
'''Umtara:''' "There you are. I've been looking for you."
  
The end. Yay, finally my novel is completed! I'm going to make many copies of it and spread it all over the world. Then one day... Tee hee!"
+
'''Book:''' ''Umtara was looking for an elder of the Elves. The Elves could sense each other through their magical connection, but Umtara, incapable of magic like everyone else in his tribe, had to do legwork to find her.''
  
'''[[Gold Clown]]:''' "What are you doing?"
+
'''[[Seria]]:''' "Good day, Umtara."
  
'''Becky:''' "*Shriek*"
+
'''Elder:''' "Long time, no see, Beast Tau King. What can I do for you?"
  
'''Gold Clown:''' "Oh, geez! Did you really have to yell? [[Iron Aim]] could've activated the alarm system!"
+
'''Umtara:''' "Um, I came to consult you about some concern of mine."
  
'''Becky:''' "Did you hear me reading? How much did you hear? And why were you eavesdropping.?"
+
'''Book:''' ''The Tau usually speaks his mind without preamble, but today there's hesitation in his voice. The tactful Elf girl who is with the Elder quickly stands up.''
  
'''Gold Clown:''' "Starting from the dragon entering the castle. What kind of novel is that?"
+
'''Seria:''' "Oh, I almost forgot that I have books to return to the library. Excuse me, Elder. Beast King."
  
'''Becky:''' "When I go outside, no one will know who I am. I'm thinking if the people of the outside world get to know my story, they'll worship me like a goddess. Then I can eat delicious things, wear pretty clothes... Tee hee!"
+
'''Umtara:''' "I'm sorry I interrupted you."
  
'''Gold Clown:''' "You're strangely ambitious for a homunculus. Maybe Luke shouldn't have modified you so perfectly. How many times do I have to tell you that you cannot get out of here? If you're so bored, I can teach you some magic, but I doubt homunculi have the intelligence to learn magic. Hah hah hah!"
+
'''Seria:''' "Not at all. Enjoy your conversation."
  
'''Becky:''' "...Red light!"
+
'''Book:''' ''The elder waits until the girl is so far that her keen Elven ears cannot pick up on their conversation.''
  
'''Gold Clown:''' "Pardon?"
+
'''Elder:''' "So, what is it?"
  
'''Becky:''' "I said red light and you moved. Now Golc, you're the tagger. Catch me if you can!"
+
'''Umtara:''' "I've been seeing more Human visitors these days. I don't mind the adventurer and traveler kinds, but the people I've been seeing are clad in iron and that doesn't bode well with me."
  
'''Gold Clown:''' "Wha... What?! Golc? Me? I like that... Ah, stop!"
+
'''Elder:''' "I'm aware of that problem. I'll assign more archers and guard the forest."
  
'''Book:''' ''Becky runs from Gold Clown, out of the watchtower, through the hallways in the Castle of the Dead. Puncher, startled by the sudden whizzing noise, punches Bubble Buffer on the back of its head. Bubble Buffer shoots clear bubbles in retaliation, taking down three Lampers in its way. Web Spider leaps as Becky approaches, to catch her, but she crouches and rolls past the spider, breaking an innocent Blue Lamper's bulb along the way. Becky mocks Web Spider and continues to run.''
+
'''Umtara:''' "Please do. That'll make our job easy. By the way, do you have any idea what those Humans are?"
  
''But she can't go too far. As soon as she reaches the Salamander's Furnace, an alarm goes off, alerting the activation of [[Iron Aim]]. That means Iron Aim has entered the combat mode. Becky likes to play, but not with something so dangerous. She tries to use the emergency stairs to return secretly from everyone else, but [[Giant Argos]] catches her.''
+
'''Book:''' ''Umtara sounds wary. He doesn't know why, but his instincts is warning him of a looming danger.''
  
'''Becky:''' "Get off! Get off me!"
+
'''Elder:''' "Soldiers. I think they're here to do some kind of research."
  
'''Giant Argos:''' "Becky, loud. Becky, causes trouble again. Becky, I throws!"
+
'''Umtara:''' "They'd better not touch the Great Pentacles."
  
'''Becky:''' "NO!"
+
'''Book:''' ''The Great Pentacles around the Grand Flores forest were made by Myre, a Human mage whose selfless act had gained him eternal respect from the Elves and other habitants of the forest.''
  
'''Gold Clown:''' "Arrgh, Argos!"
+
''The Elves have been pushed out of their lands by the greedy Humans, and the Great Pentacles are the only thing that keep them safe from the outside world.''
  
'''Giant Argos:''' "My name is no Arrgh, Argos!"
+
''Grand Flores isn't the home only for the Elves. This vast ancient forest houses myriad animals and trees, and therefore is a crucial part of the ecosystem of Arad.
  
'''Gold Clown:''' "Argos, put the kid down! Without her, Luke's dimensional navigation system cannot function!"
+
'''Elder:''' "I don't think they would, unless they're suicidal. There will be worldwide consequences if Myre's pentacles are destroyed."
  
'''Giant Argos:''' "Grr... You. Make noise again..."
+
'''Umtara:''' "I'd really like to believe that, but the Humans always have been looking for opportunities to destroy and plunder our forest. Some of them might try to do anything to satisfy their greed, the hell with the consequences."
  
'''Becky:''' "All right, all right! Let me go! Blood is rushing to my head! I'm going to puke!"
+
'''Elder:''' "That's why we've stayed vigilant. This forest has us Elves and you Taus, the strongest of us all. Nothing bad can happen to it as long as we work together to protect it."
 +
 
 +
'''Umtara:''' "I hope you're right. I just can't seem to shake off this bad feeling... Ah, forget it. I'm only embarrassing myself by talking about intuitions in front of an Elf."
 +
 
 +
'''Book:''' ''Umtara stands up and hefts his greatax, which takes several Humans or even Elves to lift it off the ground. The Elf Elder admires his incredible strength.''
  
'''Book:''' ''Argos huffs and drops Becky. Becky hits the ground headfirst, and groans. Argos ignores her and returns to his post.''
+
'''Umtara:''' "Then I'd better go look around the edges of the forest, in case there are more suspicious people than those soldiers."
  
'''Becky:''' "Sheesh, it hurts, you stone head!"
+
'''Elder:''' "Then you'll be gone for a while. I'll pray for your safe return."
  
'''Gold Clown:''' "I thought you could kill a dragon."
+
'''Umtara:''' "Thank you. See you later."
  
'''Becky:''' "Hmph, Argos would've been dead if I had my sling!"
+
'''Book:''' ''The Elf Elder watches Umtara's hulking frame disappear into the trees. This quiet forest is thickly wooded with trees that are bigger and taller than the king of the Taus. Whatever the Humans are up to, they cannot destroy this forest as long as the Elves and the Taus exist.''
  
'''Gold Clown:''' "If you say so. *Chuckle*"
+
''The Humans, however, are the most unpredictable sort. Even with the Elf Elder's wisdom and experience, it's almost impossible to predict what they will do.''
  
'''Becky:''' "Don't laugh! I may be a homunculus, but I can be strong, too! Hmph! When I become strong, I'll spin you in the air so hard that you'll puke!"
+
''Young Elves think they must go to war with Humans, but they're too inexperienced and proud to see the fact that the Humans are the mainstream of Arad. They can overwhelm the Elves by sheer force of numbers.''
  
'''Gold Clown:''' "Well, just be patient. The King of Hebron will recover soon, and you may be able to get out of the castle. The world will be his."
+
''The Elf Elder hopes that the Humans will be able to have a better outlook, that they will become at least smart enough to see the future more clearly, like Myre who sacrificed himself for the peaceful coexistence of all races.''
  
'''Becky:''' "I'd rather it be mine, but... Well, I owe that geezer, Luke, so... Ouch! What was that for?"
+
''This Grand Flores must be protected not just for its habitants, but also for Arad. The Elf Elder hates to even imagine what will follow the destruction of the Great Pentacles.''
  
'''Gold Clown:''' "You can do anything you want, but don't call Luke a geezer."
+
''Forests, once destroyed, can never be restored to their original beauty. The Elf Elder prays that Umtara's worries will not come true for the sake of Grand Flores and the rest of Arad.''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
 +
 
 +
===Black Crusade Report===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:Black Crusade Report Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Black Crusade Report
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
''This Document is confidential and accessible only by those approved by the faithful [[Grandis Gracia|representative]] of Remidia Kathedra. No part of this Document may be reproduced, distributed, or transmitted in any form or by any means. Failure to comply with these standards is grounds for expulsion and punishment, and violators may be detained for an indefinite period. The following content must be preserved without omission or modification. Annex notes may be added if they can be supported by credible proof.''
 +
 
 +
''The Anti-Ozma War, also known as the [[Black Crusade]], was fought by the holy priests with [[Michael of the Holy Eye]] in the lead, to save every life in Arad from [[Ozma]]. The war cost numerous lives, but it was meaningful in that it helped clear the world of the Apostle and his army of Imposters.''
 +
 
 +
''The Priests who were instrumental in the victory of the war were made saints. Their leader [[Michael of the Holy Eye]] was made a patron god so he could inspire bravery in the followers of God, but the decision was only made to prevent confusion among his followers. (Refer to Material 1.)''
 +
 
 +
''Dear God, please guide us! Michael, believed to be one of the most faithful, wisest servants of God, was in fact a demon who led many of his followers astray. Michael was a follower of Satan. He used God's name to deceive and corrupt us. The wisdom that we thought he had was mere trickery he used to entrap us. We must pray and repent. We must be ashamed of our foolishness and praise God's mysterious ways.  No one knew the truth until that evil Michael revealed his true colors, and when he did, all of us were devastated. (Refer to Material 2 and 3 for the proof of Michael's identity as an Apostle.)''
 +
 
 +
''Magar Rosenbach, the Archpriest of the Priest Order and a great Crusader, had to officiate Michael's inauguration ceremony with grim determination. (For the reason of his uncancelled inauguration, refer to Material 4.) Magar Rosenbach, however, decided that this report be opened to public when Arad is finally at peace, so that the truth can be told to His followers with minimal damage. Everyone who reads this report, regardless of era, must do their best to honor Magar Rosenbach's wish.''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
 +
 
 +
===Taybers's Light===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:Taybers's Light Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Taybers's Light
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book:''' ''"The golden planet Taybers was filled with vivid colors. Jewels of all imaginable colors were as common as rocks, and trees with giant rocks in the center of their trunks traveled through the sky, following their sun. There was no concept of season, and day and night were one. Everyone, when they were tired, slept in the shades cast by the trees in the sky, and their wings tucked under them, and ate ripe fruits when they were hungry. Children flapped their dainty wings and played in the golden water of the tranquil sea. Young men raced against each other against the strong winds for the biggest tree that they could find. But none of them were as fast as the Highest One.''
 +
 
 +
''The Highest One was the greatest of all. He soared through the sky despite the chill that froze everything, and fell asleep listening to the lullaby the stars sang for him. Countless men fell in their attempts to follow him. More men were blinded by the sharp feathers of the Highest One. He could see the farthest. He could see the future beyond the starlight. He drank the water of the Light Spring. He glowed more brightly than the golden planet itself. People called him the Sun in the Sea. Everyone loved his song and his beautiful wings.''
 +
 
 +
''Then purple rain began, tainting the beautiful world with its ugly color. The rain tasted bitter and it turned every fruit it touched bitter and sour. Angry waves rolled up from the golden sea. The yellow plains cracked and cleaved. Something was wrong. Lupsong, Mother of Blue Fire, summoned the Highest One and asked him to investigate the strange phenomenon. The Highest One flapped his wings and reached the red sky at once. He discovered a fragment of some sort that flickered ominously among the stars. That strange fragment was heading in the direction of his home. Without hesitation, he headed for the fragment.''
 +
 
 +
''At first he thought it was a meteor that needed to be destroyed. But the closer he got, the more convinced he was that something sentient inside the dark, nasty fragment was looking at him. He changed his course and returned to Lupsong.''
 +
 
 +
''"That dark fragment is dangerous. I'll go get rid of it. If I don't return, then I want everyone to evacuate."''
 +
 
 +
''Lupsong tried to stop him, but he was adamant. Everyone wept as they bid farewell to the brave man. A day went by. Two days went by. Three, and four days went by. On the fifth day, Lupsong unfolded her wings.''
 +
 
 +
''"Children, let's fly. [[Isis-frey]], who can soar higher, see farther, and is more powerful than anyone else, is in need of our help."''
 +
 
 +
''But he was too far away. Slenikron, who had the strongest beak of all, was so tired from the long flight that he lost all his feathers. (Reaver Rossol picked up the feathers and used them to adorn his tail. It's believed Rossol keeps himself inside the Cave of the Night in fear of Slenikron.) Those who flew too high had their wings pierced by icicles that were sharper than a razor, or they fell, their wings too frozen to move. Red Leg Arketo-frekses even had his wings tear from his shoulders and fell into the sea. Arketo-frekses hit his head as he landed on a small rocky island on the sea, but he survived. The imprint of his head still remains on the island to this day.''
 +
 
 +
''Lupsong, having realized that she could not get to Isis-frey, let along help him, wept and sang her grief. Everyone else joined her and watched the dark fragment that was visible behind the clouds. Suddenly the air in front of us rumbled, and then the fragment disappeared as if sucked into the rumbling air. Soon the purple rain stopped, but Isis-frey never returned. The people of Taybers are still waiting for the return of the Highest One, believing he will repel the sadness that fills the world and  bring back happiness with him.''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
 +
 
 +
===Unexpressed Sadness===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:Unexpressed Sadness Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Unexpressed Sadness
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
<small><blockquote>
 +
<i>It's been a fortnight since I brought [[Aganzo|him]] with me. I'm glad he's making a fast recovery, but the grim expression on his face worries me. I get anxious whenever he strokes his sword yearningly.
 +
 
 +
A part of me is happy to be so close to him, although I'm too shy to look him in the eye. I'm also so sad and depressed that I can't focus on anything. I've been making many mistakes, but if the Master has taken notice, he hasn't told me. I've pretended that I don't care if he cares or not.
 +
 
 +
Every time I catch him looking up at the sky with longing in his eyes, my heart sinks. I hate the couple of birds chirping happily outside the window.
 +
 
 +
How funny! Seeing him makes me just as happy and sad as not seeing him. This emotional turmoil is driving me insane. All the discipline I learned from the Master has gone to naught.
 +
 
 +
Why didn't my parents have me earlier? I might have been able to be with him if they did. The moon looks down at me chidingly for resenting my innocent parents.
 +
 
 +
Moon, don't judge me. You don't know this pain. Don't ask me what I'm afraid of, either. You're the coward who runs away from me at the end of the night.
 +
 
 +
The sun is up, and I hear him hooking his sword into his belt. I feel my eyes get hot from unshed tears. He hasn't recovered from his injury. Where is he trying to go? Would he not go if I latch onto his sleeve? His diligence irritates me to no end.
 +
 
 +
I asked him when he'd be back. He said he didn't know. How could he be so cold? Is he doing this to me on purpose?
 +
 
 +
Small clumps of cloud move in the wind. I hide in the Master's shadow for a while, and then turn around, trying to smile away my sadness.</i>
 +
</blockquote></small>
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
<hr>
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Unexpressed Sadness (Season 3)
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
<small><blockquote><i>
 +
It's been a fortnight since I brought [[Aganzo|him]] with me. I'm glad he's making a fast recovery, but the grim expression on his face worries me. I get anxious whenever he strokes his sword yearningly.
 +
 
 +
A part of me is happy to be so close to him, although I'm too shy to look him in the eye. I'm also so sad and depressed that I can't focus on anything. I've been making many mistakes, but if the Master has taken notice, he hasn't told me. I've pretended that I don't care if he cares or not.
 +
 
 +
Every time I catch him looking up at the sky with longing in his eyes, my heart sinks. I hate the couple of birds chirping happily outside the window. He said he'd lost his appetite, so I cooked porridge for him. He barely had a few spoonful of his food. He said he thought he forgot someone and he couldn't remember who it is.
 +
 
 +
My lips quivered, and he demanded I tell him what I know. That made me angry: it was for the first time after a while that he spoke to me. I told him that he forgot someone who died. He wanted to know the name. I lied that I didn't know, but I could never forget the name of the [[Roxy|woman]] I envied so much.
 +
 
 +
If I could move the sun from the western mountain to the east sea, would my wish be granted? If my mother gave birth to me earlier, would I have been able to be with him? I'm helpless when it comes to my feelings for him. I felt as if I'd been abandoned. The moon shone brightly as if mocking of me. If I was abandoned, I could've cried myself to sleep. The night was long and sleepless.
 +
 
 +
My room was cold and dark, so I lit a candle. The candlelight swayed and flickered in the wind, breaking my already frayed mind, bringing tears to my eyes. I told the Master that I would leave as soon as the sun comes up. The heartless man curtly bid me farewell, and then asked me the same question that I'd dreaded.
 +
 
 +
I hesitated and fidgeted. His penetrating eyes and silence urged me to answer his question. I realized I was a wildflower that could never take root in a rock who is the Master. Resigned, I told him the name. His face instantly brightened, cutting me deep. If she was so precious to him, he shouldn't have forgotten her in the first place.
 +
 
 +
He thanked me and walked away, leaving me with his shadow that grew as he went. I turned and walked the other way, trying to smile away my sadness.
 +
</i></blockquote></small>
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
 +
 
 +
===New Genesis===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:New Genesis Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=New Genesis
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book:''' ''"At the end of the world, the Great Will birthed myriad gods. They were one, infinite, omnipotent, and ubiquitous. One day, one of them lamented,''
 +
 
 +
''"We are omnipotent, but no one worships us. We can go anywhere we want, but we have no place to call home."
 +
''
 +
''And the other gods lamented with him. Another opened his mouth and spoke,''
 +
 
 +
''"We could create something that will worship us and build a place that we can call home."''
 +
 
 +
''And the other gods jumped for joy. The latter [[Crying Eyes Hilder|speaker]] had two faces behind which he hid luminous dew. In a saddened tone, he added,''
 +
 
 +
''"But creation can only follow destruction. Some of us have to sacrifice themselves for the creation of our desires, but who will want to return to the embrace of the Great Will?"''
 +
 
 +
''The other gods sighed in tandem and discussed between them. Soon twelve gods were selected and stepped forward. The god who was hiding dew lifted his eyes and examined the twelve gods. [[Cain the Fatality|One was afraid of death.]] [[Bakal, the King of Dragons|One breathed fire.]] [[Isis-frey in the Blue Sky|One moved without stepping on the ground.]] [[Kasijas the Conqueror|One had steel soaked in blood.]] [[Sirocco of Intangible|One had hundreds of faces, but none of them were visible.]] [[Ozma of Chaos|One had risen from his grave.]] [[Gangling Lotus|One could hold thousands of weapons at once.]] [[Delezie, Plagued Apostle|One bled dirty blood.]] [[Flame Eater Anton|One was as tall as the world.]] [[Luke the Constructor|One touched the earth without a word.]] [[Michael of the Holy Eye|One could see the truth.]] And last but not least, one knew all secrets.''
 +
 
 +
''The god with two faces shouted,''
 +
 
 +
''"Your sacrifice will be appreciated. Let it be known we will not kill each other, and only a blade that is forged in hardship can penetrate our hearts and send us back to the Great Will. Your sacrifice is true. Your extinction is another's creation. From you, our followers and our home will be created.""''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
 +
 
 +
===Red Sin===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:Red Sin Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Red Sin: Chapter 1
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book:''' ''"The news of the arrival of the Imperial negotiators quickly spread throughout Underfoot. To avoid unnecessary attention, the negotiators brought a small group of guards led by the famous Blade Master Vaughn. The Dark Elves hate the Empire, but they couldn't suppress their curiosity. They spilled out into the street to watch the procession of the negotiators."''
 +
 
 +
'''Robato:''' "(Vaughn Walshuted...)"
 +
 
 +
'''Book:''' ''"Vaughn was riding on a horse, bringing up the rear of the Imperial noblemen who were waving their hands haughtily at the crowds. Vaughn was everything that a knight should be: young, confident, disciplined. His battered scabbard was in sharp contrast to the new, ornate scabbard of the head negotiator.''
 +
 
 +
''Unconsciously, Robato rubbed her Ghost Arm, a dark, twisted arm shackled with heavy metal constraints. She never hated herself for having the Ghost Arm, but she was ashamed that she let it cost many lives. Robato once was a colleague of those proud Imperial Knights. In the Empire where strength is worshiped, having the Ghost Arm isn't disadvantageous as it would be in other states in Arad. Some are even envious of the inhuman power of the Ghost Arm. Robato's life in the Empire was smoother than most citizens. Of course, she had to jump through hoops, like everyone else who was not of the nobility, but she was talented and patient enough to accomplish much more than many. But it didn't take long before she started asking questions. Why is the Empire so obsessed with strength? Why is showing off one's strength more valued than using it to save the weak?''
 +
 
 +
''Time went by, but the questions remained unanswered. Robato confided in a few comrades she trusted, but their answers were vague at most. "I can't help someone unless I'm strong." That was the best answer she was given. One time, her knight master gathered Robato and the other members and said:''
 +
 
 +
''"This Arad is corrupt. Its order is destroyed, its law too slack. It's exploited by those who have a vested interest in other people's misery, and monsters are allowed to rampage. We must save the world by enacting and enforcing strict laws."''
 +
 
 +
''The knight master's assertion instantly wiped out Robato's growing uncertainty. She thought, "We're right. We are right! We are the saviors! We're warriors fighting for a better world!" From then on, her life in the Knights changed. The training was as tough as ever, but Robato didn't complain. The knight master was stern, but treated his members like his own. Their mistakes were forgiven, and their failures were comforted. Under the knight master's command, the knights developed a tight bond. To Robato who lost her parents early, they were her family. She could risk her life for the knights.''
 +
 
 +
''The Empire had a stiff image in and out of its territory. It was almost ironic that its knights enjoyed a carefree, family-like environment. Robato suspected that was what the emperor wanted. The knights are an elite army fighting for the Empire, more specifically its emperor and his family. The tighter their bond, the less likely some of them will betray the others. Robato's doubtful attitude toward the Empire's direction became known and she was summoned by the knight master.''
 +
 
 +
''She was ready for a big scolding, but the knight master, who silently glared at the young knight until that moment, grinned. In Robato's opinion, that was a hundred times more effective than a scolding."''
 +
 
 +
'''Knight Master Doter:''' "Neither the Knights nor the Empire is perfect. Neither was His Majesty. He's not a god. Everyone makes mistakes, and that includes you. Personally, I don't think the Empire's pursuit of strength is wrong. We have a large territory, meaning we have many things to protect. It's just that people in high places tend to take things to extremes. When there are too many things to protect, naturally some of the things are left defenseless. I mean, sometimes we're unable to save everyone who needs saving."
 +
 
 +
'''Book:''' ''"Since that day, the new Knight Robato practiced harder to save more people than she did yesterday, for the emperor, and for Arad."''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Red Sin: Chapter 2
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''Book:''' ''"As the even tenor of her life continued, Robato's questions were forgotten like measles in childhood. Robato was ethical, enough to come up with such "boring" questions, but she wasn't squeamish about violence. In fact, she was more aggressive and fearless than anyone else. She always took the lead in fighting. Those who underestimated her strength because of her gender paid for it the hard way. But she never let her superior strength go to her head. She continued to practice hard, and her diligence and righteousness were admired by everyone in the Knights. No one doubted, that with more experience, Robato would be the greatest knight in the Empire.''
 +
 
 +
''One day, the knight master summoned Robato. He said the emperor was drafting young knights to form a new unit. The knight master wrote her a letter of recommendation. She left for Vitalon, the City of Gold, the same day. After arriving at the capital city, Robato passed the new knights unit tests with flying color. Elite knights from everywhere in the Empire trained together to push past their physical and mental limits every day. The leader of the unit was the emperor himself. The morale of the young knights soared sky-high.''
 +
 
 +
''Robato remembered the day before her first mission like it was yesterday. She was excited for the opportunity to make herself known to the emperor. As a knight, what else was a greater honor than demonstrating one's ability in front of her master? That night, she couldn't sleep. She thought the bright starlight streaming in through the window was the gods' encouraging message for her. But later she would be disillusioned. She would realize she was wrong to think the biggest honor for a knight was an opportunity to distinguish herself. She would learn that she traded her pledge to the weak for her ambition for success and that she was the emperor's puppet and had the blood of countless innocent people on her hands.''
 +
 
 +
''The mission given to the Knights was simple: raise your sword for the Empire's better future. The knights were powerful warriors. They didn't need to ask their nominal deputy knight master what to do.''
 +
 
 +
''1) They were to subjugate barbaric invaders and conquer their lands. The Empire could never have enough land. Whether the barbarians really invade the Empire's territory didn't matter.''
 +
 
 +
''2) They were to eliminate political dissidents and three generations of their families. The empire couldn't afford disorder. Whether their targets were real dissidents didn't matter.''
 +
 
 +
''Every nobleman who traveled far to visit their camp on behalf of the emperor told them the same think: "You're the true patriots," and it never failed to boost the morale of the knights. Everyone in the Knights knew not everything they were told to do was ethical, but for a big chariot to move smoothly, rocks must be removed from the road. A little bit of injustice and tragedy were like small scratches on the skin from moving the rocks, or at least they wanted to think so.''
 +
 
 +
''After the end of their long-term expeditionary mission, Robato found herself isolated in the Knights. Her questions about her country had become stronger than her loyalty to it. She wasn't a pacifist or squeamish about killing enemies, but she couldn't agree with most of the things that the Knights did in the name of the Empire. She decided to quit.''
 +
 
 +
''The deputy master asked her a few questions just for formality's sake, and then asked if she had a place to go. When she said no, he offered his letter of recommendation. He said she could be far away from the Empire, protecting some researchers while they researched.''
 +
 
 +
''What Robato wanted was a chance to change the Empire, not a job. She hesitated for a moment, and then accepted his offer. She thought she could take some time off to regroup and plan her future. She didn't know this decision would change her life."''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Red Sin: Chapter 3
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}'''Book:''' ''Robato arrived at a big testing ground surrounded by forests. For someone who spent most of her life practicing her swordsmanship, that place was a completely new world filled with high-tech equipment and flashy gadgets. A researcher who was Robato's age said the testing ground was equipped with the highest technology available in Arad, and her duty was to make sure the technology remained disclosed. Guarding the testing ground and escorting the researchers were like child's play compared to fighting in the battlefield. She felt so at ease, as if she was on a vacation. She had more than enough time to plan her future. In retrospect, Robato enjoyed peace for a fleeting moment. She regretted that she was so absorbed with herself that she didn't care to check what kind of place she was in. She shouldn't have believed that it was simply for security reasons that the testing ground was hidden in a remote woodland.''
 +
 
 +
''At a certain point of time, the atmosphere of the testing ground changed. The researchers were no longer allowed to go outside the training ground. Neither were Robato and the other guards. Instead, things came in from the outside. Big wooden containers were let in the training ground multiple times a day. She was told the weeping noises were of animals that were brought in for testing purposes.''
 +
 
 +
''One night, she couldn't sleep. She was walking outside when she took notice of some strange activities that were taking place inside the testing ground. Quietly, she approached. She didn't have permission to enter the restricted area, but she entered anyway, bracing for an accident. And she arrived in a strange place.''
 +
 
 +
''There was a big machine that looked different from the other testing equipment she was used to. Shaped like a tangled chain of loops, the machine boomed and shook as if it was about to explode. The researchers around the machine looked nervous, but not because something went wrong. It was because something incredible was about to happen. Instinctively, Robato hid behind a box. The machine boomed and shook for a little longer until the center of the machine glowed, and then from it a blindingly bright light exploded with a gust of wind that pushed everything backward, including the box that Robato was hiding behind.''
 +
 
 +
''What the hell happened? Confused, Robato looked around and then froze. She saw something that she hadn't seen because of the darkness. There were children. There were adults. All of them were gagged and their arms were red. Robato gasped. She turned toward the machine, praying what she was thinking was wrong. The researchers were looking at a man kneeling at the foot of the machine that was still emitting light. Like the others infected with the Ghost Arm, he had his arm shackled with an unbreakable iron chain, and he was covered with bloody wounds. He couldn't talk with the gag in his mouth, but he didn't need to talk. His eyes showed the anger and hatred that he was feeling. Robato stood up to stop the researchers, but the light from the machine intensified and the whole place was swallowed by ominous light. Robato opened her eyes and couldn't believe what she was seeing. In place of the gagged man, there was a strange creature in chains. Having the dessicated head of a fish with tree roots for a body, it looked so grotesque that Robato wasn't sure if it was even a creature. She remembered the circus magic that she once saw switched things, then shook her head. Her brain couldn't register what her eyes were seeing. She just stood and gaped at the creature. Her heart was racing.''
 +
 
 +
''Suddenly someone touched Robato. She turned, panicked. Some female researcher, looking desperate, mouthed a "follow me" to her. She didn't look like she had malicious intent and Robato was too confused to refuse her. She ran after the female researcher. She could hear exclamations, sighs, and muffled screams from behind her, but it was all she could do to pinch her throbbing Ghost Arm. The female researcher, when they safely got out of the facility, warned Robato not to come back again before she went back in. Robato just nodded.''
 +
 
 +
''She returned to her room, disheartened. She was naive to think that she could change the Empire. The creation of the monster she saw was proof that the empire was truly immoral. What the hell was happening in here? What should I do now?''
 +
 
 +
''Since that night, everything changed. The face of the monster overlapped with those of the researchers who smiled and said hello to her. She didn't know what to do in a place that she didn't really know, alone. She was still debating what to do, when she was ordered to catch a thief who stole confidential materials. Reluctantly, Robato joined the search team, and when they found the thieves, she froze. All of them were in tatters and malnourished and had the Ghost Arm. As if possessed, the thieving Slayers lunged at the guards. Robato was forced to kill a few of the thieves in self-defense.''
 +
 
 +
''By the time the fight was over, all the other guards in the search team were dead and the Slayers who were alive but on the ground were glaring daggers at her. Robato had to choose. She was ordered to catch them. If she let them go, she'll become a traitor. Since she had the Ghost Arm, the researchers may decide to experiment on her, using that terrifying machine. She was only their enemy because she was a knight of the Empire. Slowly, she approached the Slayers. The image of the grotesque monster kept flashing through her mind. She wasn't afraid of dying, but being turned into that kind of monster was a completely different terror that was hard to overcome.''
 +
 
 +
''In the end, Robato chose to follow her heart. She told the Slayers how to get out of the forests, and then took care of the guards that came after the first search team. She didn't kill them, but what she did was enough to make her a traitor. That day she lost her knighthood and became a fugitive. She traveled around Arad, carrying nothing but her sword. She always had to be on guard, even when she was asleep, but she never regretted helping the Slayers escape.''
 +
 
 +
''She arrived at Underfoot after her arrest order was lifted quietly. It'd been whispered that the emperor found out about the inhumane experiment that took place in Vilmark and imposed severe punishment to the researchers. The truth was buried in time. Robato stopped reminiscing and watched Vaughn Walshuted ride away on his horse. She heard Vaughn was the most trusted and distinguished warrior of the emperor. How much does he know about his own country? Is it possible he's being used like everyone else in the Empire? Robato couldn't give him advice even if she wanted. All she could do was hope that the admired hero of Arad could change the Empire.''
 +
 
 +
''Robato turned and wormed her way out of the crowd. She was going to pray for those whom she killed directly and indirectly. Her heart was heavy from all the sins she had committed.''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
 +
 
 +
===Mischievous Homunculus===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:Mischievous Homunculus Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Mischievous Homunculus
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''[[Becky]]:''' ""Since ancient times, there was a castle as tall as the sky standing on one end of Pandemonium. The name of the castle was unknown. No one who entered the castle came out alive to tell about it. Because the castle was so tall, people thought it was connected to Heaven where the gods resided. Strong and brave warriors who wanted to meet the gods entered the castle.
 +
 
 +
The castle was infested with strong monsters. The warriors from the outside were strong, but the monsters were stronger. All of the warriors were killed. When no one returned from the castle, people believed those warriors had reached the gods. So warriors continued to enter the castle. One day, a crazy dragon appeared in front of some warriors who were about to enter the castle. 'I'm the owner of this castle! Only I can get to the gods!.' The dragon was big and immensely strong. The warriors couldn't dare challenge it. Snickering, the dragon entered into the castle.
 +
 
 +
The monsters attacked the dragon, but it wiped the floor with them. It defeated the giants, and even the old clown. The dragon was invincible. The dragon reached the highest floor of the castle, which no one else had ever seen. There, it found a beautiful blonde girl. The girl was super strong.
 +
 
 +
The dragon lunged at her, but she swatted it aside like a fly. She swung her fist, and the dragon was flattened. The dragon was a wimp compared to the girl. She's still living in the top floor of the castle. She's the strongest girl in the world, so she'll never let anyone else take her castle. But one day she'll destroy the castle and come out for world domination. Her name is Becky."
 +
 
 +
The end. Yay, finally my novel is completed! I'm going to make many copies of it and spread it all over the world. Then one day... Tee hee!"
 +
 
 +
'''[[Gold Clown]]:''' "What are you doing?"
 +
 
 +
'''Becky:''' "*Shriek*"
 +
 
 +
'''Gold Clown:''' "Oh, geez! Did you really have to yell? [[Iron Aim]] could've activated the alarm system!"
 +
 
 +
'''Becky:''' "Did you hear me reading? How much did you hear? And why were you eavesdropping.?"
 +
 
 +
'''Gold Clown:''' "Starting from the dragon entering the castle. What kind of novel is that?"
 +
 
 +
'''Becky:''' "When I go outside, no one will know who I am. I'm thinking if the people of the outside world get to know my story, they'll worship me like a goddess. Then I can eat delicious things, wear pretty clothes... Tee hee!"
 +
 
 +
'''Gold Clown:''' "You're strangely ambitious for a homunculus. Maybe Luke shouldn't have modified you so perfectly. How many times do I have to tell you that you cannot get out of here? If you're so bored, I can teach you some magic, but I doubt homunculi have the intelligence to learn magic. Hah hah hah!"
 +
 
 +
'''Becky:''' "...Red light!"
 +
 
 +
'''Gold Clown:''' "Pardon?"
 +
 
 +
'''Becky:''' "I said red light and you moved. Now Golc, you're the tagger. Catch me if you can!"
 +
 
 +
'''Gold Clown:''' "Wha... What?! Golc? Me? I like that... Ah, stop!"
 +
 
 +
'''Book:''' ''Becky runs from Gold Clown, out of the watchtower, through the hallways in the Castle of the Dead. Puncher, startled by the sudden whizzing noise, punches Bubble Buffer on the back of its head. Bubble Buffer shoots clear bubbles in retaliation, taking down three Lampers in its way. Web Spider leaps as Becky approaches, to catch her, but she crouches and rolls past the spider, breaking an innocent Blue Lamper's bulb along the way. Becky mocks Web Spider and continues to run.''
 +
 
 +
''But she can't go too far. As soon as she reaches the Salamander's Furnace, an alarm goes off, alerting the activation of [[Iron Aim]]. That means Iron Aim has entered the combat mode. Becky likes to play, but not with something so dangerous. She tries to use the emergency stairs to return secretly from everyone else, but [[Giant Argos]] catches her.''
 +
 
 +
'''Becky:''' "Get off! Get off me!"
 +
 
 +
'''Giant Argos:''' "Becky, loud. Becky, causes trouble again. Becky, I throws!"
 +
 
 +
'''Becky:''' "NO!"
 +
 
 +
'''Gold Clown:''' "Arrgh, Argos!"
 +
 
 +
'''Giant Argos:''' "My name is no Arrgh, Argos!"
 +
 
 +
'''Gold Clown:''' "Argos, put the kid down! Without her, Luke's dimensional navigation system cannot function!"
 +
 
 +
'''Giant Argos:''' "Grr... You. Make noise again..."
 +
 
 +
'''Becky:''' "All right, all right! Let me go! Blood is rushing to my head! I'm going to puke!"
 +
 
 +
'''Book:''' ''Argos huffs and drops Becky. Becky hits the ground headfirst, and groans. Argos ignores her and returns to his post.''
 +
 
 +
'''Becky:''' "Sheesh, it hurts, you stone head!"
 +
 
 +
'''Gold Clown:''' "I thought you could kill a dragon."
 +
 
 +
'''Becky:''' "Hmph, Argos would've been dead if I had my sling!"
 +
 
 +
'''Gold Clown:''' "If you say so. *Chuckle*"
 +
 
 +
'''Becky:''' "Don't laugh! I may be a homunculus, but I can be strong, too! Hmph! When I become strong, I'll spin you in the air so hard that you'll puke!"
 +
 
 +
'''Gold Clown:''' "Well, just be patient. The King of Hebron will recover soon, and you may be able to get out of the castle. The world will be his."
 +
 
 +
'''Becky:''' "I'd rather it be mine, but... Well, I owe that geezer, Luke, so... Ouch! What was that for?"
 +
 
 +
'''Gold Clown:''' "You can do anything you want, but don't call Luke a geezer."
  
 
'''Becky:''' "All right, all right! I'll call him just Luke. Satisfied now? Sheesh. Sigh, I'm tired of hide-and-seek. I'm really bored. If I can't go outside, then I want someone to come in."
 
'''Becky:''' "All right, all right! I'll call him just Luke. Satisfied now? Sheesh. Sigh, I'm tired of hide-and-seek. I'm really bored. If I can't go outside, then I want someone to come in."
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
 +
 +
===Interlude: Noblesky===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:Interlude_Noblesky.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Interlude: Noblesky 1
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' What was I supposed to do?
 +
 +
''The bridge of Empyrean's warship [[Noblesky]] was no longer bustling with the soldiers who fought Anton. In the middle of the empty space stood Princess Erje, her eyes reflecting the blue ocean outside the ship.''
 +
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' What was I supposed to do? Should I have set the Lawless District ablaze like they insisted? Should I have let them accuse the Commander of something he didn't do? Should I have left [[Empyrean]] for [[Pandemonium]], like the [[Imperial Princess Isabella|Imperial Princess]]? Should I have gone against what my heart was telling me?
 +
 +
'''[[Woon]]:''' ...
 +
 +
''The Colonel, who had stood by the Commander all this time, was quiet. He'd been in and out of consciousness since he arrived, and everyone was worried about him. Looking at his pale face, Erje was worried and relieved at the same time. Having him there, she felt as if the Commander was with her. But [[Jackter]] was far away, locked up in Ghent. She should've let the old general retire like he wanted. He wouldn't have been disgraced like this, then.''
 +
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' What is it?
 +
 +
'''[[Woon]]:''' I'm sorry. I wasn't sure if I was expected to answer.
 +
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' You are.
 +
 +
''Suddenly, Woon knelt on the ground, supporting his body with his hands. Given his sickly condition, he shouldn't be standing, let alone kneeling on the cold floor, but he didn't care.''
 +
 +
'''[[Woon]]:''' The nobles abandoned their duty to this country and ran from the war. They're not in a position to demand anything, and yet they act this way because you didn't punish them for their cowardice. Like criminals who have managed to evade prosecution, these nobles think that they're untouchable. And the people are angry with you because you gave them a free pass. That was what triggered all this.
 +
 +
''Erje pursed her lips. She wanted comfort and got reprimanded instead. Most times she welcomed criticism, but not when she felt cornered and so desperate. Jackter once told her the same thing, that she must arrest all the runaway nobles. She refused. Then, she let herself be captured by the Kartels. She felt responsible for their abandonment... She regretted it now, and hearing her mistake through someone else's mouth brought tears to her eyes. When she spoke, she couldn't help but sound sullen.''
 +
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' They have so much influence on this country's economy. At that time, most of my soldiers were wounded and out of commission. I caused my country grief by letting myself be captured by the enemy. I felt that I must forgive their misjudgment and give them a chance to redeem themselves.
 +
 +
'''[[Woon]]:''' But what about [[Nevillo Jurgen]]? He couldn't fulfill his ambition because he was born a man, so he attacked the chink in your armor more persistently than the others. Why do you think he remained in [[Ghent]] when his peers ran? Why do you think he volunteered to lead the expedition of [[Zelva|Zelba]]? One who has power never leaves his office for long, lest someone else might seize the opportunity to replace him. He wanted to set himself apart from you and the other nobles so badly. He would have risen against you if the nobility didn't beat him to it. And once this is over, the general populace will side with him, and that would further weaken your authority.
 +
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' The nobility is trying to protect their own interests. Don't you think it won't be able to check Jurgen?
 +
 +
'''[[Woon]]:''' The people remember who fought for Ghent in your absence. They don't care about the rest of the nobility. The nobles abandoned them when they needed them the most.
 +
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' Then they surely remember Commander Eagle Eye fought for their country. Why don't they accept him?
 +
 +
'''[[Woon]]:''' I can't tell you, but you know he and I are both from the Lawless District.
 +
 +
''Erje closed her mouth. She already knew the answer before she asked the question. It was all but her fault that the citizens of the Imperial Capital and the nobility became so wary of Jackter. The old prejudices against the Lawless District still held strong, and her implicit trust in the most successful man out of the district was a threat to the rest of Empyrean. Woon just couldn't bring himself to point that out.
 +
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' But what about the false accusation of the Commander? I spent a lot of time trying to stop the nobility from spreading rumors about him.
 +
 +
'''[[Woon]]:''' If I were you, I would've tried him in the court of law to openly discuss the possible transgressions that others say he has committed. The nobles blamed him for leaving Ghent, letting you be abducted by the enemy, and going on a wild goose chase after [[Anton]]. But Anton had to be stopped, and the commander succeeded. The way he went about doing it may have been flawed, but that wasn't serious enough to cost his life. I would have publicly forgiven him and emphasized how he defeated Anton and made it possible to defeat [[Apostles#Ninth_Apostle:_Luke_the_Constructor|Luke]]. According to our Constitution, he can't be tried twice for the same crime. The trial would've permanently put the matter to rest. You succeeded in emphasizing his exploits, but you failed to use them to justify his mistakes. As a result, more people turned against him. And now he's in their hands, at their mercy.
 +
 +
''Woon coughed frequently, but he didn't let that interfere with his speech. At the beginning of their conversation, Erje all but resented this young colonel, but now she couldn't help but admire him. He was still in his twenties, and he was already being mentioned as the next brigadier general, and that wasn't just because of his military exploits. But Erje felt resistance to his suggestion. His solution would have brought disgrace -- albeit temporarily -- to the great hero.
 +
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' We're not the Kartels. We don't repay honor with disgrace. Our soldiers fight to protect their country and honor. Trying such a great general for something he didn't do is not what we stand for. You have a point, but I would never bring disgrace to the Commander's name.
 +
 +
''The Princess's tone was not as harsh as it was before, but still, there was underlying resistance. If Jurgen was here, he would've called out on her ethical hypersensitivity.
 +
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' But now I understand why the Commander thinks so highly of you. I considered appointing you an envoy purely based on others' opinions. I'm glad I didn't, and I wish we had this conversation a long time ago. Colonel, Jurgen wants to change Empyrean. But he's involved with the Empire. The moment Empyrean falls into his hands, our country will never be free from the Empire's influence. We must stop Jurgen. To do that, we must return to Ghent. What do you recommend for me to do.
 +
 +
'''[[Woon]]:''' I'd recommend that you call for reinforcements and leave the rest of the planning to others who are more experienced than I am. I'm not good enough to assist you in this matter.
 +
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' Do you mean, call Wespeace and Etten for reinforcements? They've been ignoring this situation for so long. I doubt they'll respond to my summons.
 +
 +
''Erje gripped her skirt, but she couldn't stop the tears from falling. The sense of betrayal and sadness that she tried so hard to bury had resurfaced. She would have broken down in tears if Woon tried to console her. But he didn't. He kept his head lowered and gave her time to regain composure.''
 +
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' ...We don't have time to wait for them. Jurgen isn't the only problem. The nobility will kill the Commander. The Adventurer risked his life to save me. I have people waiting for me in Ghent, and I can't disappoint them. We must move now.
 +
 +
'''[[Woon]]:''' I'm not equipped to make that happen. Order me to assassinate Jurgen instead. I can get it done, even if it kills me.
 +
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' I can't lose you. And I'm not going to order you to assassinate anyone. We're different from the nobility. I won't do things that I'll later feel ashamed to admit to my people. They've been through enough as it is. I can bring him to justice without shedding blood. He's committed treason -- that's enough to keep him locked away for the rest of his life. There has to be another way. We're just unable to figure it out at this moment.
 +
 +
''Erje was adamant. Prostrate, Woon looked up at the Princess, and let his head fall, feeling helpless.''
 +
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' I'm sorry if I'm being unreasonable, but we can't respond to violence with violence. That'll only further push the people away from us. I have a plan. I haven't had a chance to achieve it because of the nobility, but once we get over this, I'll see that it comes true. That plan will help me and the Commander make Empyrean the world that we've been dreaming of. In that world, the nobility won't be as unruly as they are now. The Commander thinks of you as his own. If anything, you should do this for him.
 +
 +
'''[[Woon]]:''' ...I will, Your Highness.
 +
 +
''Woon answered after a moment of hesitation. Erje thanked him and left the bridge. The sudden wind from the sea startled her, but she quickly straightened her shoulders and opened her eyes wide. She wasn't the princess who shook and wept a moment ago. Her innate intelligence and will, which helped her endure when she was at the mercy of the Kartels, gave her new strength.
 +
 +
'''[[Erje]]:''' (...I may be cornered, but I'm not dead. So long as I'm alive, I must fulfill my obligations to my country and my people. I'm not going to fail the Commander and the Adventurer.)
 +
 +
''Erje was no longer looking out at the sea. In the meantime, Woon was panicking. He was tormented by self-condemnation, a fear of failing again, and self-doubt that kept whispering to him that things would've been better if Jackter was there instead of him. Left alone on the bridge, Woon remained kneeling on the floor, unfeeling of the cold that slowly seeped from the floor into his body and unaware of time passing, until his men came to find him.''
 +
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Interlude: Noblesky 2
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
''The Princess was nowhere to be seen in the Palace of Ghent. Nevillo Jurgen walked into the old palace, barely suppressing his rage at having to see parts of it destroyed here and there and even burned to the ground in some places.''
 +
 +
''He dismissed all the others around him, entered the princess's study, and called for his daughter Marianne. It was a long while before his daughter showed up with Coast Guard Captain Hiram in tow, and Nevillo was so angry that it was all he could do not to strangle his daughter.''
 +
 +
'''[[Nevillo Jurgen]]:''' How can you be so stupid? How could you do this to your own father?
 +
 +
'''[[Marianne]]:''' ...Father. You came earlier than I thought.
 +
 +
'''[[Nevillo Jurgen]]:''' Is that all you have to say?
 +
 +
'''[[Marianne]]:''' I don't understand why you're so upset. I've captured Jackter the Eagle Eye and banished the princess for you.
 +
 +
''Sometimes you're so upset that you're at a loss for words. That was the case with Nevillo. He was next to none when it comes to speech and persuasion, but his daughter's cheeky remark left him feeling as if he was choking.''
 +
 +
''Hiram, who stood behind Marianne and had observed the father and daughter's conversation, broke into a grin.''
 +
 +
'''[[Hiram Klauf]]:''' Don't be so upset. Your daughter led this operation with flying colors. She's no longer the child you have to take care of. That should make you happy.
 +
 +
'''[[Nevillo Jurgen]]:''' Captain Hiram, what are you up to? Why did you encourage her to do this? We're no better than the Kartels now.
 +
 +
'''[[Hiram Klauf]]:''' No, we're not. We can't be more alike. Besides, it was you who said we shouldn't wait for an opportunity to present itself--we should create it on our own. The Coast Guard has been waiting all this time.
 +
 +
''Hiram sounded nonchalant, but he couldn't hide the scowl on his face. Fortunately, Jurgen was too angry to notice.''
 +
 +
'''[[Nevillo Jurgen]]:''' But the timing was wrong! And the people saw you chase away the helpless princess! Now they think the nobility and the Empire are no better than the Kartels! Sympathy is a great weapon. Why do you think the people still love that incompetent princess? The time that the people bowed to their ruler out of fear has gone. They still love her because they're a sentimental lot. Public sentiment is what kept her in power so far. The princess hasn't done anything good for the country, but she didn't do anything wrong either. The people know that. They feel sorry that she became a leader so young. They already think of her like their own child, and we drove her away like the Kartels did!
 +
 +
''Jurgen was now screaming, but that didn't faze Marianne. Her gaze on him remained cool and sarcastic.''
 +
 +
'''[[Marianne]]:''' What do you mean, "we?" You never took part in this.
 +
 +
'''[[Nevillo Jurgen]]:''' What are you talking about?
 +
 +
'''[[Marianne]]:''' Where were you when we drove away the princess and captured the Eagle Eye? Oh, that's right. You were in Zelba. It was Sir Verta, The Coast Guard, and I who saw this through. You have no right to be angry with me.
 +
 +
''Nevillo felt as if someone poured cold water on his head. This wasn't the obedient Marianne he knew. He felt as if he didn't know the woman who stood proudly in front of him.''
 +
 +
''Marianne ignored the pang of guilt she felt and lifted her chin defiantly. She still respected her father, but she was tired of being called a little girl who hid behind her father.''
 +
 +
'''[[Marianne]]:''' We couldn't have done this if it weren't for you. I know that and I'll make it up to you, but I can't live in your shadow forever.
 +
 +
'''[[Nevillo Jurgen]]:''' ...Everything I did, I did it for you. You could've waited a little longer. You could've done all this without blood on your hands.
 +
 +
'''[[Marianne]]:''' You're only thinking I was impatient because you're a man. But I'm a woman, and in my opinion, the timing couldn't have been more perfect. The Eagle Eye will pay for costing this country so dearly, and the princess will soon follow suit.
 +
 +
''Nevillo, who felt helpless until that moment, lifted his eyebrows and glared.''
 +
 +
'''[[Nevillo Jurgen]]:''' This is why I kept you from the Council of the Nobility for as long as I did. You're going to punish the princess, but for what? Were you listening to me when I said the princess did nothing wrong? You could say anything you want, and the people will still think she's innocent. Incompetent, yes, but not guilty. Incompetence in a leader is a reason for impeachment. But everyone knows the princess was too young and unprepared when she ascended to the throne. Why do you think I attacked Eagle Eye? Insisted that soldiers like him are a threat? It's because I didn't have a choice. He was her wings and her shield. When you catch a bird, you break its wings first. I went for the Eagle Eye for that exact reason. I was going to separate him from her, so I could pressure her into handing the Imperial Seal over to me. I was going to send her away to a small temple in a remote village, so she would be a constant object of ridicule until she dies. Well, thanks to you, she's become the fragile little princess again.
 +
 +
'''[[Marianne]]:''' Are you saying we shouldn't kill her? But she won't stop fighting as long as she lives.
 +
 +
''Marianne argued. Nevillo felt wearier talking to her than fighting his enemies.''
 +
 +
'''[[Nevillo Jurgen]]:''' What you really have to worry about is Anton. Anton is strong enough to decimate our army and destroy the Power Station. All the princess has is sympathy from the people. If the Eagle Eye didn't go after Anton when he did...
 +
 +
''Nevillo stopped himself from firing off. He remembered Hiram was still with them.''
 +
 +
''Hiram Klauf was the captain of the Coast Guard and Herman's student. Nevillo knew he wasn't the friendly man he wanted others to believe.''
 +
 +
''He needed him. He was the sharpest weapon he had in his arsenal. But he couldn't be trusted; having faith in a bomb's destructive power is one thing. Thinking it wouldn't kill you is another.''
 +
 +
''Nevillo breathed deeply. On the inside he was a whirlwind of emotions, but his face remained a mask of calmness, a self-defense mechanism he developed during his years at the Court.''
 +
 +
''Behind this mask he quickly calculated his odds, and then spoke in a brittle tone that worked like a charm on his daughter every time.''
 +
 +
'''[[Nevillo Jurgen]]:''' Go. Give away food to people and make them happy. Convince Zeldine Schneider and Marlene Kitzka that you mean the princess no harm. Don't hurt either one of them. They're your ticket out of this.
 +
 +
''His tone worked on his daughter just as he expected. His resignation unsettled her more than his anger ever could.''
 +
 +
''Marianne was already agitated by the Adventurer's intervention that ruined her complete victory. She couldn't leave the study faster to do what her father said.''
 +
 +
'''[[Hiram Klauf]]:''' You should be proud of her. She could've made a great soldier if she had a mind.
 +
 +
''Nevillo swore inside.''
 +
 +
''He cut down the military enlistment budget, claiming that they didn't need many soldiers, that soldiers were no better than the Kartels except that they had the license to kill, that civilians could help in states of emergency. It was clear what Hiram just said wasn't meant to be a compliment.''
 +
 +
'''[[Nevillo Jurgen]]:''' You instigated my daughter and other impatient nobles into creating this mess. What the hell are you up to?
 +
 +
'''[[Hiram Klauf]]:''' I told you before. I hate the Eagle Eye. When we were dealing with Anton, he only pretended to trust me. He was ready to throw me out the first chance he got. I only beat him to it. I'm just trying to survive here, just like you. That's good enough reason, isn't it?
 +
 +
'''[[Nevillo Jurgen]]:''' You should've been more patient. I would've given you the chance.
 +
 +
'''[[Hiram Klauf]]:''' Please, I knew your plan. You were going to dispose me and the rest of the Coast Guard once our usefulness ran out. I couldn't let you do that.
 +
 +
'''[[Nevillo Jurgen]]:''' ...
 +
 +
'''[[Hiram Klauf]]:''' Anyway, I see that we've come to agree that the princess should live. At least for a while. The Adventurer, hero of Empyrean, is on her side. That's been disconcerting to both the nobility and the general populace. At least the Eagle Eye gets to die. You were thinking about sending him into exile instead, weren't you?
 +
 +
''Hiram sounded cynical and frustrated at the same time. Jurgen hid the surprise in his eyes by pretending to adjust his glasses.''
 +
 +
'''[[Nevillo Jurgen]]:''' ...We might need him in the future.
 +
 +
'''[[Hiram Klauf]]:''' Pick your side. You either get rid of him or keep him alive. But now that things have changed, trying to save the old eagle will only get you in trouble. I'd better leave now. We couldn't have done this if it weren't for you, true, but also there are things we have to clean up because of you. We'll settle our debts later.
 +
 +
''Hiram left, leaving Nevillo alone in the princess's study. He stood up from the chair and paced about the room.''
 +
 +
'''[[Nevillo Jurgen]]:''' (Hiram needs to die. I picked him because I thought he was useful, but who knew he was a loose cannon? He has to die. He has to. The princess is not a problem. Neither is the nobility, so long as it refuses to accept the fact that times have changed. The problem is that rabid dog.)
 +
 +
''Nevillo was so angry that he was gritting his teeth, but he still took care not to speak his mind, lest someone might be hiding somewhere, spying on him.''
 +
 +
''But his head was filled with all kind of bloody images at that moment. For a while, he thought about possible solutions to his problem. Then, when he finally found just the right one, he smiled.''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Interlude: Noblesky 3
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' What should we do?
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' What should we do what?
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' Should we go rescue the Princess, or stay put?
 +
 +
''They were sitting in a corner of the training ground at the Etten Headquarters. Navarre stopped drinking his soda and asked nonchalantly. Biyan didn't feel as relaxed as her companion might have been.''
 +
 +
''She almost strained her neck, trying to make out if her superior was drunk or something from drinking too much soda. For a moment, she even wondered if she was talking to a different person.''
 +
 +
''Navarre turned his eyes away from the flock of clouds in the sky and smiled at Biyan, whose face was closer now that before.''
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' You smell like you've been drenched in soda. You're Lieutenant Navarre, alright. How many cans have you had today?
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' No one gets drunk by drinking soda. By the way, can you really smell soda from me?
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' Yes, because you drink it so much. Keep drinking like that, and you'll lose all your teeth before you're forty.
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' ...Don't treat me like an old man. My teeth are fine.
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' I was just saying because you asked a strange question. You've always been fighting for the Princess.
 +
 +
''Biyan closed the book she was reading. The afternoon was quiet. No one had passed them by. In the official Army setting, they were superior and subordinate, but when they were alone, they talked like when they were just two mercenaries.''
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' That's because she symbolizes the resistance against the Kartels, but now... I'm tired.
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' I don't mind fighting, but I don't want to fight forever. We just got out of a war with the Kartels, and then a revolt broke out in Ghent. Will there ever be peace?
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' The princess had nothing to do with the Kartels though.
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' In a way, she does. The Kartels rose from the ashes after the priestess who preceded her died. Anton is as unstoppable as a natural disaster, but everything else happened after was because of our leaders.
 +
 +
''Navarre started to ponder, and Biyan took the soda bottle out of his hand and took a long drink.''
 +
 +
''The soda tasted warm and flat, rather than sweet and cool as she imagined. She grimaced, and Navarre gloated.''
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' This is why I can't emphasize the importance of prompt supplies enough. Whoever has better logistics wins the battle, always. And we're not them.
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' You and your soda and your logistics. But why? What did the Commander say that got you in this weird mood?
 +
 +
''Biyan was talking about the commander of the Etten Headquarters. Navarre furrowed his brow.''
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' She thinks maybe we should go independent this time.
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' Huh?
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' The electricity that feeds all of Empyrean is produced in this place. Its infrastructure is not completely restored, but now that the engineers are back, it's producing enough electricity for Etten. We don't need help from the Seven Shards anymore.
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' The Coast Guard has gone to Ghent. The nobility will be too busy dealing with the situation in the capital city for a while. The same with the Imperial Army. She thinks we could use electricity as leverage to demand our rights.
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' In other words, our lady commander wants to become the governor of Etten.
 +
 +
''He said it so casually that it took a while for Biyan to feel the impact of his statement. Wide-eyed, she repeated the word governor for a while. Suddenly, she started hitting Navarre on his shoulder.''
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' Are you crazy? Why didn't you say anything to stop her? This is why people call you the nepotism hire!
 +
 +
''Navarre was quiet for a moment. She was telling the truth, and he had nothing to say to that.''
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' She's just daydreaming about it for now. I didn't want to goad her, so I just played along. Ouch--stop hitting me!
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' Etten is at an important turning point. We have to decide if we look out for Number One, or stay loyal to the rest of the state.
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' Don't get any stupid ideas! This country is smaller than you think. If something goes wrong, we'll die--oh.
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' Yes, things have changed. We can always run to Underworld, and we don't have to go through Ghent to get there. Underworld is much bigger than Empyrean. It'll be harder to find us there.
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' So what seems to be the biggest challenge to this country is the greatest opportunity to the ambitious.
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' So I asked you, whether we should go rescue the Princess or stay put.
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' We could choose the Princess and stay loyal to her, but we'd get stuck. The others might refuse to join us, and we could even get caught by the Commander before we leave Etten.
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' Or we could stay here and keep the aspiring governor in check. But that would leave the Princess helpless.
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' We could stay here and still express our support for her, but then the Commander wouldn't leave us alone. We'd better keep our mouths shut, or she'll make us go to the end of the land and force us to dive into the ocean.
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' She's a smart lady. She's plotting treason, and she's not leaving anything that could incriminate her. What I told you about her wanting to become governor didn't come out of her mouth. Say that to anyone else, and I'll be court-martialed for defaming my superior.
 +
 +
''Navarre grumbled, but Biyan was relieved to know he was still the same man he was when they first met as mercenaries.''
 +
 +
''But Navarre was just one man, and there is only so much one man can do.''
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' Many Imperial soldiers remain in the Imperial Capital. Our soldiers there are inferior in number. Our weapons are old to begin with, but they're practically all worn out after fighting the Kartels. Cut off the electricity, and things will get worse. Restoring the Princess to the throne wouldn't be the biggest problem then.
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' What about the Lawless District--I mean the Wespeace Headquarters? It hasn't moved either. What's their stand?
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' We should leave it out of the discussion. It has enough on its plate--Kartel remnants, the militia, anarchists, oh, and Neil. Thank the gods, I wasn't sent there.
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' I wish Commander Eagle Eye were here... The nobility ruined his reputation, but he's the greatest man I know.
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' Those who believed the rumors that the nobility spread about him are also at fault, even if they didn't actively participate.
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' I don't know how things went so wrong...
 +
 +
''Navarre felt the sadness in her tone, but he didn't know what to say.''
 +
 +
''How did things go so wrong? Some say things went downhill the moment Anton showed up. Some blame the reappearance of Underworld.''
 +
 +
''Navarre agrees with neither. He patted Biyan's lowered head. The sun finally came out from behind the thick blanket of clouds, but it was about to disappear below the horizon.''
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' The Adventurer opened a path to Underworld. He came with the Imperial Army, and took care of the Kartels and Anton. And even Luke. Maybe all this is just part of the change that the Adventurer has set in motion.
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' Whether it's a new change or simply a side effect is yet to be seen, but he didn't cause this conflict we're having. It's always been inside us.
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' I don't know what's going to happen, but I'm glad I have choices.
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' What do you choose?
 +
 +
'''[[Navarre]]:''' I'm staying. You?
 +
 +
'''[[Biyan]]:''' Do you have to ask? You know I won't go anywhere without you.
 +
 +
''Biyan smiled gently behind the curtain of black hair that fell to the side of her face.''
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
 +
 +
===The Wind Blowing upon the Lawless District===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:Locked Storybook.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=The Wind Blowing upon the Lawless District: Chapter 1
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
<small>
 +
<i>The Company was accused of making an attempt on the life of Empyrean's highest priest. Even thought it was respected as a famous mercenary group, the general populace accepted the Palace's declaration of its betrayal as the truth. Its leader, O'Connell, kept screaming in his cell that his group was innocent, but no one listened.
 +
 +
As a freelancing mercenary group, The Company refused to take side with any political faction. Its goal to protect its country as a neutral party was admirable, but created many enemies. By the time O'Connell realized that, it was too late.
 +
 +
There was no place for his group on the Capital Island, which meant he had to escape. The Company, consisted of capable mercenaries, could get its leader out of the prison easily, but the question was, "Where should we go afterward?"
 +
 +
The Lawless District was a land of its own. it was the only place in Empyrean that the Palace's influence couldn't reach. It was also a land of outlaws, but there were no noblemen who would want to take advantage of the military group. There, it could be free.
 +
 +
The Company arrived at a beach in the Lawless District. The Lawless District was baren and filled with silence instead of the glamor that prevailed on the streets of the Capital Island. O'Connell liked it. Here, he could enjoy the gentle breeze blowing against his cheeks without having to watch his back.
 +
 +
Even outlaws had cities. O'Connell and his group decided to go to the city on the other side of the desert that they were in and get familiarized with their new home.
 +
 +
While crossing the desert, they met various groups of outlaws. All of them were rough, and most of them were just rabbles of misfits. "There guys are beneath us," said O'Connell.
 +
 +
Then, they met a pretty well-organized group. O'Connell was going to teach them a lesson before sending them back home, but it didn't take long before he realized this group was different from the others. It had an established chain of command, and its members were good at using weapons.
 +
 +
The group's leader, after several of his members were given a good beating, stepped in and tried to negotiate with The Company. He knew his adversaries were different from the other outlaws he'd met.</i>
 +
 +
'''Enzo Sipo:''' "Let me apologize for these guy's rudeness. We thought you were after us. You're impressive. Name's Enzo Sipo.
 +
 +
<i>This group's leader was unique. He sounded passionate and there's even a sense of righteousness in his eyes. He was too good to be in the midst of outlaws. He was determined to turn the Lawless District, the cesspool of outcasts, into a paradise where everyone could be happy.
 +
 +
Enzo's group was smaller than other city-based groups, but everyone in his group believed in his cause and admired his charismatic leadership. O'Connell liked his cause, too. The Company joined Enzo's group.
 +
 +
After The Company joined, Enzo's group grew bigger by the day. The members of the Company always fought on the front lines of battles, teaching and inspiring their outlaw comrades along the way. Enzo Sipo, with the seasoned battle commander O'Connell and Sandstorm Varracht on his side, won every battle he fought and conquered every city he had his eyes on.</i>
 +
 +
'''Enzo Sipo:''' We will not steal from you.
 +
 +
<i>The people of the Lawless District raved as their new leader abolished the old corrupt government and its cruel policies. Enzo embraced these people and showed them his generosity. Everywhere in the Lawless District, people couldn't stop singing praise about him. Feeling threatened by Enzo's rising popularity, other outlaw groups declared war against him. Sparks of war consumed the once quiet cities.
 +
 +
However, Enzo was an amazing tactician. During the siege of an enemy fortress, he used bikes to climb the steep hill on which the fortress stood, taking the enemy by surprise.
 +
 +
Watching the fortress being burned down, Enzo spoke.</i>
 +
 +
'''Enzo Sipo:''' I hope one day they'll understand my dreams. And that not everyone here is an outlaw, and that some of us are actually good guys. The dusk is dark, but the sun will rise. A better future is coming.
 +
 +
<i>One day, Enzo and his group were taking a break from fighting other outlaws when a suspicious mist rolled in to their camp. Soon, a strange disease of unknown cause started spreading among them. This disease made them sleepy, they dreamed nightmares. Day after day, they would have nightmares, and in the end they became extremely violent and impulsive. Enzo took this seriously, so he quarantined those who were infected by this sleep disorder and looked for its cause, but all to no avail. Time passed.
 +
 +
One evening, Enzo experienced nightmares and auditory hallucinations.
 +
 +
You desire power...</i>
 +
 +
'''Enzo Sipo:''' "Who's there? Who's talking?
 +
 +
<i>Enzo looked around and saw a suspicious woman in a black hood. Alerted by her sudden appearance, he pointed his gun at her.</i>
 +
 +
'''Enzo Sipo:'''  Who are you?
 +
 +
'''???:''' You're too sharp. I'd better leave now.
 +
 +
<i>The woman in a black hood disappeared before he shot his gun. Enzo then started hearing things.</i>
 +
 +
'''Enzo Sipo:''' Power... Destruction...
 +
 +
<i>Enzo Sipo had changed. The others hadn't noticed, but his eyes had lost the passion and yearning for romance. Naturally his group changed, too. Without his control, the outlaw group went back to its old cruel habits, pillaging people and setting their homes on fire. O'Connell and Varracht sensed the change in Enzo. He was as charismatic as before, but he was no longer the man they admired.</i>
 +
 +
'''Varracht:''' Enzo has changed.
 +
 +
<i>Varracht muttered bitterly. O'Connell agreed. Enzo, wanting to expand his territory, started letting any outlaws--even the crueler ones--into his group. Then one day, The Company's information led Enzo to a mercenary captain named Rangelus. Infamous for his cruelty and penchant for carnage, Mercenary Captain Rangelus went against everything Enzo Sipo said he believed in. Enzo wanted him, anyway. He notified his executive members that Rangelus was going to join them. O'Connell and Varracht were suspicious. Enzo wanted the outlaws to live freely; Rangelus wanted to keep them under his control.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' But Rangelus doesn't believe in what we do.
 +
 +
<i>O'Connell said. Enzo answered sternly.</i>
 +
 +
'''Enzo Sipo:''' Beliefs can change. We need him to unify the Lawless District and show the Capital Island what we've got.
 +
 +
<i>Enzo spoke with the same charismatic tone as he used to, but O'Connell and Varracht knew better. His leader was a different man now.
 +
 +
Enzo went to where Rangelus's Guerrillas were stationed. No civilians were around, probably too scared to be in the company of the ruthless mercenaries.</i>
 +
 +
'''Rangelus:''' What bring the Eye of Dawn here?
 +
 +
<i>Rangelus asked. He had a captured civilian with him.</i>
 +
 +
'''Enzo Sipo:''' Fight for me, Rangelus.
 +
 +
<i>Enzo said in an authoritative tone.</i>
 +
 +
'''Rangelus:''' I don't care for what you believe in. You don't rule by force. You're too softhearted to kill a civilian.
 +
 +
<i>Having heard that, Enzo fired his gun at the civilian without batting an eye.</i>
 +
 +
'''Enzo Sipo:''' What about now?
 +
 +
<i>Rangelus hesitated for a moment, and then said with a note of laughter in his voice.</i>
 +
 +
'''Rangelus:''' That changes things. I'm in.
 +
</small>
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=The Wind Blowing upon the Lawless District: Chapter 2
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
<small><i>
 +
Sandstorm Varracht had been with Enzo Sipo since Edon's Brotherhood, and he was renowned among the outlaws of the Lawless District ro his ability to trigger sandstorms with his bullets. Among the Kartels, Varracht was just as influential as their leader, Enzo Sipo.
 +
 +
Varracht opposed the Kartel's plan to wage war in their effort to unify the Lawless District, and he had such a big following within the organization that Enzo Sipo couldn't ignore his opinion.</i>
 +
 +
'''Varracht:''' I've been with you for a long time, but I can't agree to this meaningless war.
 +
 +
<i>Varracht's voice carried his convictions.</i>
 +
 +
'''Varracht:''' And letting that woman who comes to you sometimes meddle in our business goes against the ideals I've been chasing all this time.
 +
 +
<i>Cold anger gleamed in Enzo's eyes. This was why he'd excluded Varracht from meetings with the Prophet.</i>
 +
 +
'''Enzo Sipo:''' Then, I have no reason to hesitate anymore. You and I are done.
 +
 +
<i>Enzo said quietly and coldly.</i>
 +
 +
'''Enzo Sipo:''' You've been a good friend, so I'll let you go peacefully. But you'd better wish you never see me again.
 +
 +
<i>Enzo turned his back and walked away. Varracht thought, I'd better leave him alone; I don't want to cause any unnecessary fights. So Varracht left Enzo's tent. Now that Enzo is determined to conquer all of the Lawless District, it'd be safe for him to move as far away as possible. While crossing the desert, he noticed some people were following him, screaming death for the traitor.
 +
 +
Enzo must have told them that I've betrayed him, he thought. He set up traps as he moved, and while his pursuers were distracted by the traps, he safely got out of the danger zone. He was about to leave the Kartel's territory when he was welcomed by another comrade. He didn't look lie he wanted to fight. Varracht smiled and spoke.</i>
 +
 +
'''Varracht:''' You're so good that you got through my traps as if they were nothing, didnt' you?
 +
 +
<i>O'Connell responded with a serious look on his face.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' I'm not here to stop you. Help me persuade Enzo. I know it's not too late to bring him back to who he was.
 +
 +
<i>Listening to his plea, Varracht shook his head.</i>
 +
 +
'''Varracht:''' No, he and I no longer pursue the same dreams. I'm just going to live quietly from now on.
 +
 +
<i>Still smiling, Varracht said. Then the smile was gone, replaced by a grim look.</i>
 +
 +
'''Varracht:''' Be careful. Enzo has changed. I don't know what happened to him, but he's not the man I used to know.
 +
 +
<i>With that being said, Varracht left quietly. O'Connell watched him leave with a heavy heart.
 +
 +
The Kartel radioman, who watched O'Connell let Varracht go, quickly radioed his superiors from a hidden corner.
 +
 +
Having received the radioman's report, Enzo pondered. He still needed The Company. The addition of Rangelus' Guerrillas had significantly strengthened the Kartel both qualitatively and quantitatively, but it still relied on The Company's fighting skills and information network. Cutting ties with O'Connell meant losing the Company, and worse, turning it into enemies. Unlike Varracht's followers who admired Varracht, but had no close relationship with him, the members of The Company were O'Connell's students and thus had a tighter bond with him. If O'Connell agreed with Varracht, then he was also an obstacle in the Kartel's way.
 +
 +
After much consideration, Enzo made an important decision,. He then summoned a company of Rangelus's guerrillas.</i>
 +
 +
'''Enzo Sipo:''' Get rid of O'Connell. Tomorrow, he's visiting the village for an inspection. Ambush him in the desert on his way back.
 +
 +
<i>The next day, O'Connell was on his way back from his inspection on the village when he thought about the last thing Varracht said. But he couldn't give up on Enzo. He still wanted to believe that his leader wouldn't abandon his men.
 +
 +
"Why don't we take a break?" A student's voice brought him back to reality. They were in a hamlet near Kartel Headquarters. O'Connell nodded at his students and took a seat by the beacon mound in the hamlet. His students kept quiet, to give him time to clear his head.
 +
 +
After the short recess, they were about to resume their trip when the sound of many bikes and machines were heard. So many bikes in such a small village? O'Connell instantly became suspicious. He told his students to get ready for a fight. A group of bikes were coming at them. They looked like typical outlaws, but they moved organically like well-trained soldiers. O'Connell realized Enzo Sipo sent them to kill him. Regretting his misjudgment, he raised his gun.
 +
 +
The Kartel's mechanical weapons and land runners bombarded him and his students. We're going to die here, O'Connell thought. The two students who were next to him said, as they were shooting at converging enemies, "Master, we'll stay. Please keep the others alive." He wanted to tell them no, but then he saw the other students were struggling. He had no choice.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' I'm sorry...
 +
 +
<i>O'Connell started running toward where the other members of The Company were. He thought, My students are good. They can stay alive until I get back here with the others. Without looking back, he ran. No one followed him, probably his students were doing a good job stopping them. The few minutes he ran felt like eternity.
 +
 +
Just when he thought he couldn't run anymore, his students came into sight. "Master! Are you okay?" He told them to go help the two students in the hamlet. They look off in a hurry. A short time later they returned, looking grim.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' "Where are those two?
 +
 +
<i>O'Connell asked. "By the time we got there, they were already..." They couldn't continue. He felt as if the sky caved in on him. He lost two students, and it was his fault. Then it dawned on him that the Lawless District also wasn't the place for him and his students, and that there was nowhere else they could go in Empyrean. Where should they go now?
 +
 +
His mind swirled with many thoughts at once. Since there was no place for them in Empyrean, they had to find a new world... What about the world below the sea? Suddenly he remembered a book that he read a long time ago.
 +
 +
It said there was a continent below the deep sea at the bottom of the oceans, and it was bigger than Empyrean. During Bakal's reign, most history books were burned, but the name of the continent, Arad, had survived. It's sotry was unbelievable, but there was proof of its existence. Other Empyreans might have thought it was just a myth, but O'Connell knew better. He saw some confidential documents about it when he was in Ghent. He made up his mind.
 +
 +
As soon as he returned to his base, he called every member of The Company. He had to make a move before Enzo Sipo attacked again. He told his students about the Arad Continent, and they agreed to go with him. They trusted their master and now that Enzo had turned his back on them, there was no place else they could go in Empyrean.
 +
 +
But how could they reach the bottom of the oceans? The Company had no idea. Every one of its members was a great fighter, but none of them was knowledgeable in machinery or transportations. After a while, O'Connell's friend and a unit leader, Schmitt, suggested, "Doctor Gizel is making some kind of machine to stop the Imperial Army from attacking from under the sea. Maybe we should offer him our help to test it." O'Connell stared at Schmitt with a smile.</i>
 +
</small>
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=The Wind Blowing upon the Lawless District: Chapter 3
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
<small>
 +
<i>The members of The Company arrived at Gizel's lab without coming in contact with too many Kartel members. The Kartel guards at the entrace to the lab stopped them, but when they realized it was the Company, they let them pass. Given the number of guards at the entrance, O'Connell could tell Doctor Gizel was on a very important project. He approached Gizel. The Doctor noticed his presence and turned toward him. Even though he couldn't see them well, the machines that were being tested in the back of the lab looked impressive, even to the eyes of a mechanical layman like O'Connell.</i>
 +
 +
'''Gizel:''' O'Connell. I didn't know you were coming. What brings you?
 +
 +
<i>Gizel was curious. The Company, Enzo's vanguard group of soldiers, came all the way to the rear line to visit his lab.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' I came because I heard you were studying how to prevent the Imperial Army from attacking us from behind through the sea.
 +
 +
<i>O'Connell carried on nonchalantly.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' We'll be the first ones to take the hit if the Imperial Army strikes. We want to know what kind of protection we'll be provided with.
 +
 +
<i>Doctor Gizel nodded in agreement, but the suspicion on his face remained.</i>
 +
 +
'''Gizel:''' I understand. I just don't know why Enzo didn't tell me you were coming. Anyway, alright. This thing here is called an air-cushion vehicle, also known as a hovercraft. I've modified it so it could go under water. I'm thinking we can use them to attack the Imperial Army from underwater while it's on the sea.
 +
 +
<i>His explanation sounded simple, but O'Connell had no doubt that the machine itself was extremely complicated. There was a reason he was a member of the Seven Shards. Admiringly, O'Connell spoke to the Doctor.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' That sounds great. I say you let us test-drive the thing, so we know what to do with it when we fight.
 +
 +
<i>Doctor Gizel thought for a while, and then spoke.</i>
 +
 +
'''Gizel:''' Alright, but it's going to take a few days to finish it. In the meantime, I want you to help me.
 +
 +
<i>The Company didn't have time, but it had no choice. O'Connell nodded. After that, The Company started helping around Doctor Gizel's lab. The Doctor put it on simple tasks, organizing items in the lab, moving parts, or scouting the perimeter of the lab. After a while, O'Connell became suspicious of the Doctor's intention. He had a feeling that Gizel was stalling. He asked some students to gather information about the hovercraft and the rest to continue to do as the Doctor said.
 +
 +
The information his students brought to him proved his suspicion. "Master, Doctor Gizel is aware of our defection. He's trying to stall us until more reinforcements from the Kartel arrive. The hovercraft is already completed." O'Connell's face hardened as he listened to the student's report. They were running out of time. If they fought the Kartel's reinforcements, they could be outnumbered and wiped out before they had a chance to escape.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' What's their ETA?
 +
 +
<i>Two days from now, in the evening.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' Our window of opportunity is pretty small.
 +
 +
<i>"Tell us what to do." O'Connell answered firmly.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' Tomorrow, we'll get ready to evacuate. Schmitt, take some men and get the parachutes ready. Say that you're going to scout around the lab. Everyone else will continue to do as Gizel says. The day after tomorrow, we all will go out to scout the perimeter and steal the hovercraft, heading for Underworld.
 +
 +
<i>The next day, O'Connell's students prepared to escape without alerting Gizel, just as their master asked. Some went out to procure parachutes, using a perimeter patrol as an excuse. The rest continued to do chores for Gizel to keep him reassured. In his quarters. O'Connell pondered. Even though he acted strong in front of his students, he was worried.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' According to the documents I saw, that continent is not a myth. But can this hovercraft take us there? What if it fails?
 +
 +
<i>"Master, everything's ready." The student's voice brought him back to reality. Night had fallen already. "Okay, got it." The only thing left to do was fool Gizel. "I'll be back."
 +
 +
It was dark, but Gizel was still in his lab, researching. O'Connell's voice broke his concentration.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' Doctor Gizel, I'm going to take The Company out tomorrow to train and patrol the area.
 +
 +
'''Gizel:''' You already patrolled this area more times than necessary. And if you want to train, you can always train here.
 +
 +
<i>O'Connell was prepared for this situation.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' Sure, but we don't train out in the open. Our combat style is shared only among the teachers and students.
 +
 +
'''Gizel:''' I guess. I remember hearing your group is peculiar like that. Alright, do as you want.
 +
 +
<i>Gizel said uninterestingly, and then went right back to work. O'Connell stared at him for a moment and left quietly. Watching him leave from the corner of his eye, Gizel mumbled.</i>
 +
 +
'''Gizel:''' As if I'm stupid enough to believe such a sloppy lie.
 +
 +
<i>He then called a soldier.</i>
 +
 +
'''Gizel:''' Remove the air tanks in the hovercraft tomorrow morning. And have our troops wait on the sea around the hovercraft.
 +
 +
<i>The next day, The Company left the lab. When they were safely out of the guards' field of vision, O'Connell asked his students to stop moving.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' Now, let's turn around and head for the hovercraft. Hurry.
 +
 +
<i>The hovercraft was anchored at a temporary freight dock connected to a cliff by a metal bridge. Fortunately, no Kartel soldiers were around there.</i>
 +
 +
"Start the machine now!" O'Connell ordered his students and started preparing to take off.
 +
 +
'''Gizel:''' Where are you taking my machine?
 +
 +
<i>Gizel's voice sent chills down O'Connell's back.</i>
 +
 +
'''Gizel:''' You can't fool geniuses like me. Guys, get them out of my machine!
 +
 +
<i>Kartel soldiers came surging. "Is it running yet?" asked O'Connell in a desperate tone. "Master, it's going to take a while to charge this thing before we can turn it on." O'Connell asked other students to charged the machine.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' Alright, then we need to stall them for the time being. Stop them!
 +
 +
<i>He started firing his gun at the Kartel soldiers. Doctor Gizel urged his soldiers to attack, and when several of them went down, he came at The Company himself, riding a mech. "Leave my machine alone!" "Master, it's charged. Get on!" His students shouted at him as Gizel charged.
 +
 +
O'Connell hurriedly finished the Kartel soldiers he was fighting, and then got on on the hovercraft with his students. "Submerge now!" With his order, the hovercraft submerged into the sea. Doctor Gizel stopped his soldiers from going after them. "They don't have enough oxygen. They'll die soon enough. Just wait here." Gizel looked out to sea, picturing the members of The Company dying from lack of oxygen in the water.
 +
 +
While going deeper into the sea, O'Connell thought to himself. Now that they were underwater, they were safe from the Kartels. But his sense of relief didn't last long. His uncertainty about reaching the Underworld safely bubbled up again. Outside the hovercraft was filled with darkness as it continued to go down in the sea. Only the bubbles that rose sometimes showed that they were underwater. "Master, we're almost out of oxygen." O'Connell told the student to remain calm because they were almost at their destination.
 +
 +
But he wasn't sure if he was right. How much longer do we have to go? Is the story about the continent real? What if... we die before we get there? O'Connell was lost in thought when his students shouted excitingly, "Master! Master! I see a light coming from below!" Finally, his expression softened. "The gods didn't forsake us. Get the parachutes ready!"
 +
 +
While his students prepared the parachutes, the light in front of the hovercraft became brighter and brighter. SPLASH! The hovercraft shot out of the water with a slashing noise. They were falling from the sky. They made it! O'Connell was excited. "This must be the mythical Underworld," said his students excitedly as they unfolded their parachutes, getting ready to plunge into the new continent beneath them.</i>
 +
 +
'''O'Connell:''' Yes. This is our new beginning!
 +
</small>
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
 +
 +
===A Heroine===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:A Heroine Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=A Heroine
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
|}
 +
 +
===Seclusion===
 +
{| class="wikitable" style="background-color: #aaaaaa; text-align:center;"
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Cover
 +
!style="background-color: #CEF6E3;" |Chapter(s)
 +
|-style="background-color: #ffffff;" align="center"
 +
|[[File:Seclusion Cover.png]] || valign="top"|
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Seclusion: Chapter 1
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Seclusion: Chapter 2
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 +
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 +
{{HiddenTextStart|
 +
|Title=Seclusion: Chapter 3
 +
|Width=600
 +
|Show=none
 +
}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
{{HiddenTextEnd}}
 
|}
 
|}

Latest revision as of 06:50, 25 June 2021

Storybooks are Use items that are acquired from dungeons that explain lore not shown in Epic Quests. Each Storybook contains 1 to 5 chapters. Upon using the item, the player receives a side quest, and at the end receives reward gold and experience at chapter completion. After completion, players can re-read the Storybook again on all account characters through the Storybook tab in the Use Item Inventory.

Storybook items can be found from every dungeon's boss, but there are some exceptions. They cannot be found in Mt. Kulun, Forgotten Land, Suju Arena, Special Quest Dungeons, Event Dungeons, and the Valley of Fallen Souls. However, in scenario and adventure mode dungeons, storybooks will not drop if the boss monster is a normal dungeon's named monster.

There are different grades of storybooks ranging from Rare and Unique to Legendary. Rare and Unique storybooks are Account Bound whereas Legendary storybooks are tradeable. Storybooks also have an 2 week expiration date after acquisition.

Note: Storybooks have a level requirement dictating their reward gold and experience. If the player uses a Storybook and is underleveled, it will stay in their Unfinished Quest tab.

Note: If you delete character which started a storybook quest but did not complete it, each chapter of the storybook that the character had in progress will be reset.

Storybooks

Blue Guardian

Cover Chapter(s)
Blue Guardian Cover.png

Wingless Angel

Cover Chapter(s)
Wingless Angel Cover 1.png

Way of the Priest

Cover Chapter(s)
Way of the Priest Cover.png

Great Adventurer Karakas

Cover Chapter(s)
Great Adventurer Karakas Cover.png

Broad and Shallow Knowledge for Refined Aradians

Cover Chapter(s)
Broad and Shallow Knowledge for Refined Aradians Cover.png

Alchemist's Friend

Cover Chapter(s)
Alchemist's Friend Cover.png

Low Ranking Knight Training Journal

Cover Chapter(s)
Low Ranking Knight Training Journal Cover.png

The Wind Blowing upon Empyrean

Cover Chapter(s)
The Wind Blowing upon Empyrean Cover.png

Hidden Bomb: The Cyphers

Cover Chapter(s)
Hidden Bomb- The Cyphers Cover.png

Children of Chain Peace

Cover Chapter(s)
Children of Chain Peace Cover.png

Happy Magic Classroom

Cover Chapter(s)
Happy Magic Classroom Cover.png

Last Heir of the Ulus

Cover Chapter(s)
Last Heir of the Ulus Cover.png

Old Friend

Cover Chapter(s)
Old Friend Cover.png

Talking about Kartel

Cover Chapter(s)
Talking about Kartel Cover.png

Young Imperial Knight

Cover Chapter(s)
Young Imperial Knight Cover.png

Forest of No Return

Cover Chapter(s)
Forest of No Return Cover.png

Black Crusade Report

Cover Chapter(s)
Black Crusade Report Cover.png

Taybers's Light

Cover Chapter(s)
Taybers's Light Cover.png

Unexpressed Sadness

Cover Chapter(s)
Unexpressed Sadness Cover.png

New Genesis

Cover Chapter(s)
New Genesis Cover.png

Red Sin

Cover Chapter(s)
Red Sin Cover.png

Mischievous Homunculus

Cover Chapter(s)
Mischievous Homunculus Cover.png

Interlude: Noblesky

Cover Chapter(s)
Interlude Noblesky.png

The Wind Blowing upon the Lawless District

Cover Chapter(s)
Locked Storybook.png

A Heroine

Cover Chapter(s)
A Heroine Cover.png

Seclusion

Cover Chapter(s)
Seclusion Cover.png